Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n adversary_n concern_v great_a 53 3 2.1570 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54154 The invalidity of John Faldo's vindication of his book, called Quakerism no Christianity being a rejoynder in defence of the answer, intituled, Quakerism a new nick-name for old Christianity : wherein many weighty Gospel-truths are handled, and the disingenuous carriage of by W.P. Penn, William, 1644-1718. 1673 (1673) Wing P1305; ESTC R24454 254,441 450

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

and_o consequent_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o how_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v rule_v by_o that_o which_o be_v inferior_a to_o it_o thus_o much_o we_o get_v grant_v to_o he_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o text._n now_o reader_n tell_v i_o of_o this_o argumentation_n what_o have_v he_o take_v what_o have_v he_o reply_v to_o yet_o this_o man_n be_v deem_v worthy_a by_o the_o professor_n of_o our_o time_n to_o act_v the_o tertullus_n against_o the_o poor_a quaker_n for_o those_o word_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o tell_v he_o then_o we_o reject_v his_o gloss_n for_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n as_o he_o say_v beza_n render_v it_o must_v be_v of_o the_o narure_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o armour_n mention_v in_o that_o chapter_n that_o be_v invisible_z and_o spiritual_a which_o the_o bible_n or_o mere_a write_n we_o know_v be_v not_o to_o which_o let_v i_o add_v that_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n why_o the_o shield_n of_o faith_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n unless_o it_o be_v because_o that_o be_v in_o the_o verse_n before_o this_o if_o we_o consider_v they_o in_o a_o abstract_n sense_n or_o as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o for_o above_o all_o be_v not_o a_o prefer_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n in_o dignity_n before_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n respect_v their_o own_o nature_n and_o quality_n but_o with_o regard_n to_o the_o creature_n for_o if_o unbelief_n enter_v how_o can_v the_o loin_n be_v gird_v with_o truth_n the_o breast_n arm_v with_o righteousness_n the_o foot_n shod_a with_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n the_o head_n cover_v with_o the_o helmtt_n of_o salvation_n or_o the_o enemy_n encounter_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o respect_v man_n not_o respect_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o armour_n faith_n be_v above_o all_o or_o first_o necessary_a for_o though_o god_n christ_n the_o holy_a spirit_n eternal_a salvation_n be_v all_o or_o either_o of_o they_o great_a than_o faith_n as_o in_o themselves_o yet_o without_o faith_n no_o interest_n can_v be_v have_v in_o they_o wherefore_o our_o adversary_n preference_n vanish_v and_o his_o consequence_n about_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n concern_v christ_n answer_n to_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v write_v it_o be_v write_v i_o shall_v desire_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v in_o my_o adversary_n reply_n what_o of_o my_o answer_n he_o trans-scribe_n which_o i_o give_v to_o the_o use_n he_o make_v of_o that_o scripture_n and_o what_o sort_n of_o treatment_n he_o afford_v i_o these_o be_v his_o word_n rep._n once_o more_o and_o i_o have_v do_v with_o this_o chapter_n but_o say_v christ_n to_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v write_v what_o then_o say_v w._n p._n therefore_o must_v the_o quaker_n need_v deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n to_o resist_v temptation_n pag._n 90._o you_o may_v fear_v the_o man_n be_v craze_v or_o be_v almost_o asleep_a when_o he_o write_v this_o i_o produce_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o mean_n for_o resist_a temptation_n he_o resist_v so_o effectual_o with_o it_o be_v write_v it_o be_v write_v but_o penn_n will_v make_v you_o believe_v i_o intend_v it_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v such_o a_o mean_n can_v you_o think_v such_o a_o man_n to_o be_v sinle_v yea_o infallible_a rejoin_v his_o froth_n and_o reflection_n i_o be_o no_o otherwise_o concern_v at_o then_o that_o it_o ill_o become_v a_o pretender_n to_o divinity_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o show_v that_o he_o have_v willing_o conceal_v my_o answer_n and_o have_v make_v a_o reply_n as_o if_o he_o have_v take_v in_o all_o that_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v consider_v my_o answer_n lie_v thus_o but_o say_v christ_n to_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v write_v what_o then_o therefore_o must_v the_o quaker_n need_v deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n to_o resist_v temptation_n here_o j._n f._n leave_v i_o but_o i_o go_v on_o or_o rather_o be_v they_o not_o such_o mean_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a no_o right_a quaker_n ever_o deny_v now_o reader_n mark_n beside_o it_o be_v reasonable_a that_o christ_n shall_v so_o answer_v set_v that_o power_n aside_o which_o fill_v up_o those_o word_n and_o chain_v satan_n because_o the_o devil_n use_v scripture_n to_o prevail_v upon_o he_o as_o the_o place_n prove_v however_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o confess_v that_o wherever_o god_n be_v please_v to_o speak_v by_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o a_o tempt_v soul_n it_o may_v very_o well_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o mean_n by_o which_o god_n scatter_v such_o doubt_n and_o despondence_n and_o give_v power_n over_o temptation_n and_o that_o it_o may_v often_o so_o occur_v yet_o we_o will_v not_o have_v people_n fly_v to_o they_o as_o what_o of_o themselves_o may_v be_v sufficient_a but_o rather_o have_v recourse_n to_o that_o divine_a faith_n which_o the_o scripture_n testify_v be_v able_a to_o quench_v the_o fiery_a dart_n and_o which_o j._n f._n himself_o have_v large_o confess_v be_v to_o be_v prefer_v above_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o now_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v first_o that_o he_o give_v not_o the_o 10_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n in_o any_o respect_n 2_o that_o what_o of_o it_o will_v have_v prevent_v his_o reflect_v upon_o i_o he_o whole_o omit_v he_o seem_v di_fw-mi please_v that_o i_o make_v such_o a_o question_n upon_o his_o cite_v christ_n word_n to_o the_o devil_n as_o this_o therefore_o must_v the_o quaker_n need_v deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n to_o resist_v temptation_n tell_v folk_n they_o may_v fear_v i_o be_v craze_v or_o a_o sleep_n when_o i_o write_v it_o ask_v if_o they_o think_v such_o a_o man_n to_o be_v sinle_v or_o infallible_a as_o think_v it_o improper_a to_o his_o quotation_n and_o yet_o will_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o these_o word_n that_o be_v direct_v immediate_o to_o it_o viz._n it_o be_v therefore_o reasonable_a that_o christ_n shall_v so_o answer_v because_o the_o devil_n use_v scripture_n to_o prevail_v upon_o he_o the_o very_a answer_n in_o his_o pretend_a reply_n be_v want_v with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v our_o adversary_n over_o &_o above_o his_o other_o ill_a word_n charge_v i_o with_o design_v to_o render_v he_o impertinent_a by_o make_v he_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v such_o a_o mean_n by_o the_o question_n i_o ask_v as_o if_o i_o have_v wrong_v he_o &_o that_o he_o never_o intend_v any_o such_o thing_n through_o the_o bent_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o what_o can_v be_v clear_a then_o that_o he_o on_o purpose_n avoid_v the_o shock_n and_o take_v notice_n only_o of_o that_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n which_o be_v tear_v from_o the_o rest_n he_o think_v fit_a for_o he_o to_o play_v upon_o but_o i_o see_v no_o wrong_v i_o do_v he_o in_o so_o ask_v what_o i_o do_v for_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v one_o end_n for_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v quote_v by_o he_o and_o the_o jeer_n he_o bestow_v upon_o i_o and_o it_o beside_o his_o wilful_a neglect_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o honest_a return_n and_o yet_o complain_v for_o want_v of_o it_o when_o he_o have_v do_v so_o be_v a_o pitiful_a come_v off_o for_o a_o man_n of_o his_o pretence_n to_o controversy_n chap._n ix_o not_o we_o but_o our_o adversary_n oppose_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o testimony_n bring_v by_o he_o clear_v and_o deliver_v from_o his_o application_n our_o doctrine_n prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o several_a testimony_n his_o frequent_a and_o gross_a perversion_n of_o our_o word_n and_o write_n discover_v and_o just_o rebuke_v we_o be_v now_o get_v to_o his_o last_o chapter_n relate_v to_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o justify_v his_o charge_n by_o further_a evidence_v a_o consistency_n between_o it_o and_o william_n smith_n doctrine_n which_o i_o utter_o deny_v to_o have_v be_v william_n smith_n word_n or_o mean_v the_o charge_n be_v that_o the_o quaker_n put_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o scripture_n in_o opposition_n to_o each_o other_o his_o proof_n of_o the_o charge_n lie_v in_o these_o word_n tradition_n of_o man_n earthly_a root_n darkness_n and_o confusion_n apostasy_n the_o whore_n cup_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n bastard_n bring_v forth_o of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n etc._n etc._n which_o say_v john_n faldo_n in_o his_o first_o book_n will_v amaze_v a_o
a_o high_a judge_n and_o rule_n than_o any_o of_o those_o write_a law_n or_o any_o interpretation_n of_o man_n upon_o they_o so_o that_o if_o j._n faldo_n compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o write_a law_n they_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n have_v a_o high_a rule_n than_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o he_o that_o live_v up_o according_a to_o write_a law_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o synteresis_fw-la or_o law_n of_o law_n the_o just_a principle_n in_o himself_o do_v not_o destroy_v but_o fulfil_v those_o write_a law_n so_o they_o that_o live_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o invalidate_v but_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o swear_v for_o a_o remedy_n against_o that_o man_n falseness_n who_o be_v come_v to_o the_o truth-speaking_a of_o christ_n righteousness_n he_o that_o be_v come_v up_o to_o the_o great_a do_v not_o sleight_n but_o answer_v the_o lesser_a second_o i_o beseech_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v that_o these_o write_a law_n have_v once_o a_o beginning_n and_o that_o those_o that_o make_v they_o be_v not_o without_o a_o rule_n and_o judge_n in_o themselves_o both_o before_o and_o in_o the_o make_n of_o those_o law_n neither_o be_v that_o peculiar_a to_o they_o the_o lawmaker_n i_o still_o mean_v synteresis_fw-la of_o which_o many_o lawyer_n speak_v great_a thing_n particular_o a_o good_a old_a law-book_n call_v doctor_n and_o student_n which_o be_v not_o lessen_v by_o those_o law_n 4._o nor_o ought_v any_o law_n to_o be_v make_v or_o take_v hold_v on_o any_o person_n further_o than_o he_o act_v contrary_a to_o that_o just_a principle_n in_o himself_o which_o be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o law_n the_o immutable_a law_n by_o chief_a justice_n hobart_n in_o his_o report_n pag._n 87._o so_o that_o both_o the_o law_n be_v make_v according_a to_o this_o synteresis_fw-la and_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o judge_v according_a to_o this_o synteresis_fw-la which_o synteresis_fw-la or_o law_n of_o righteousness_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o with_o a_o mere_a declaration_n of_o its_o mind_n subject_n to_o many_o casuallity_n and_o difficulty_n but_o remain_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o inform_v his_o understanding_n and_o correct_v his_o life_n consequent_o the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n respect_v the_o write_a law_n about_o which_o and_o the_o application_n of_o it_o many_o time_n arise_v the_o controversy_n must_v not_o be_v the_o write_v but_o this_o immutable_a law_n in_o judge_n and_o jury_n from_o whence_o all_o good_a law_n proceed_v it_o be_v a_o very_a deprave_a state_n indeed_o that_o know_v no_o further_a obligation_n than_o a_o write_a law_n whereas_o a_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n be_v free_a from_o those_o enormity_n the_o law_n forbid_v and_o punish_v who_o yet_o know_v not_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n like_v unto_o the_o gentile_n of_o old_a 15._o who_o have_v not_o the_o law_n become_v a_o law_n unto_o themselves_o show_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n which_o law_n cicero_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n cite_v by_o lactant._n 6._o institut_n 8._o call_v right_o reason_n agreeable_a to_o nature_n give_v to_o all_o constant_a and_o eternal_a which_o call_v to_o duty_n by_o command_v and_o by_o dissuasion_n deter_v from_o deceit_n no_o other_o law_n may_v be_v put_v instead_o of_o this_o neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o derogate_v any_o thing_n from_o it_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v whole_o abrogate_a neither_o can_v we_o be_v loose_v from_o this_o law_n by_o senate_n or_o people_n there_o be_v no_o other_o explainer_n or_o interpreter_n of_o it_o to_o be_v seek_v neither_o will_v there_o be_v one_o law_n at_o rome_n another_o at_o athens_n one_o now_o another_o hereafter_o but_o be_v one_o law_n everlasting_a and_o immortal_a shall_v hold_v all_o nation_n at_o every_o time_n and_o there_o will_v be_v one_o as_o it_o be_v master_n and_o commander_n of_o all_o god_n that_o inventor_n disputer_n and_o maker_n of_o this_o law_n to_o who_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v obedient_a must_v fly_v himself_o and_o even_o in_o this_o thing_n must_v suffer_v very_o great_a penalty_n though_o he_o shall_v escape_v other_o punishment_n a_o excellent_a place_n which_o clear_o explain_v the_o nature_n and_o virtue_n of_o this_o innate_a light_n say_v rob._n sanderson_n late_a bishop_n of_o lincoln_n in_o his_o oxford_z lecture_n concern_v the_o adequate_a rule_n of_o conscience_n prol_n 4._o 141._o where_o he_o also_o call_v it_o from_o calvin_n a_o spark_n of_o the_o light_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v have_v preacher_n of_o his_o will_n in_o our_o very_a bosom_n and_o that_o all_o other_o law_n be_v but_o subservient_fw-fr to_o this_o in_o the_o synteresis_fw-la the_o very_a thing_n that_o we_o assert_v concern_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n three_o i_o will_v entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v that_o cessante_fw-la ratione_fw-la legis_fw-la cessat_fw-la lex_fw-la i._o the_o reason_n of_o the_o law_n cease_v the_o law_n cease_v be_v a_o old_a law-maxim_n now_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o that_o the_o write_a law_n by_o no_o mean_n yet_o that_o preposterous_a answer_n only_o can_v suit_v our_o adversary_n principle_n w●_n say_v live_v reason_n must_v be_v the_o judge_n in_o like_a manner_n do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n give_v his_o servant_n a_o understanding_n in_o past_a age_n how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o with_o respect_n to_o those_o law_n which_o be_v but_o temporary_a for_o who_o abrogation_n there_o be_v no_o express_a scripture_n which_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisees●y_o ●y_z neglect_v and_o grieve_v that_o spiritual_a leader_n and_o stick_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o continue_v and_o maintain_v against_o christ_n himself_o who_o fulfil_v they_o to_o conclude_v that_o which_o make_v law_n that_o which_o explain_v law_n that_o contrary_a unto_o which_o no_o law_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v or_o obey_v that_o which_o give_v to_o know_v what_o be_v contrary_a or_o according_a to_o just_a law_n that_o which_o give_v to_o apply_v and_o execute_v law_n right_o must_v be_v the_o judge_n and_o superior_a rule_n but_o that_o be_v this_o synteresis_fw-la law_n of_o law_n say_v chief_a justice_n hobart_n right_a reason_n say_v m._n t._n cicero_n innate_a light_n say_v b._n sanderson_n the_o law_n of_o god_n write_v in_o the_o heart_n say_v doct._n and_o stud._n spark_n of_o god_n light_n say_v calvin_n a_o live_a rule_n and_o everlasting_a foundation_n of_o virtue_n 73._o plant_v in_o all_o reasonable_a soul_n say_v plutarch_n god_n within_o say_v seneca_n and_o epictetus_n consequently_n not_o any_o mere_a write_a law_n can_v be_v the_o judge_n and_o determiner_n of_o controversy_n in_o law_n this_o reader_n hold_v almost_o all_o along_o the_o same_o with_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o law_n be_v not_o judge_n of_o the_o doubt_n that_o arise_v about_o itself_o but_o another_o be_v already_o prove_v and_o that_o the_o scripture_n can_v no_o more_o determine_v case_n of_o difficulty_n within_o themselves_o be_v as_o evident_a by_o the_o same_o argument_n and_o that_o judge_n must_v either_o be_v some_o man_n endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o in_o law_n case_n some_o judge_n with_o right_a reason_n or_o else_o th●_n eternal_a spirit_n as_o he_o be_v universal_o manifest_v in_o men._n the_o first_o i_o suppose_v our_o adversary_n will_v think_v too_o fair_a a_o pretence_n for_o popery_n to_o be_v allow_v and_o the_o last_o he_o can_v never_o avoid_v unless_o man_n without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o determine_v of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o be_v to_o deny_v the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reformer_n and_o right_a reason_n thus_o reader_n i_o conclude_v this_o point_n and_o can_v have_v be_v willing_a to_o have_v do_v so_o long_o before_o have_v not_o the_o great_a necessity_n of_o people_n better_a information_n draw_v i_o into_o a_o more_o free_a and_o large_a discourse_n then_o my_o adversary_n very_a empty_a reply_v can_v have_v deserve_v at_o my_o hand_n chap._n vi_o of_o our_o dehort_v people_n from_o read_v the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n as_o charge_v by_o this_o adversary_n though_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o to_o persuade_v all_o sober_a person_n of_o our_o reverend_a esteem_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o be_o i_o willing_a to_o remove_v any_o the_o least_o ground_n of_o scruple_n by_o a_o brief_a consideration_n of_o his_o four_o follow_a chapter_n in_o which_o he_o will_v fain_o maintain_v his_o former_a false_a and_o vnadvised_a charge_n of_o our_o hold_v in_o great_a contempt_n those_o holy_a write_n he_o begin_v thus_o rep._n my_o charge_n in_o my_o six_o chapter_n be_v that_o the_o quaker_n take_v man_n off_o from_o read_v the_o scripture_n
thing_n which_o they_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o those_o thing_n those_o believer_n have_v receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n with_o much_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o that_o chapter_n i_o can_v produce_v many_o more_o testimony_n from_o great_a and_o famous_a modern_a writer_n beside_o the_o pathetical_a expression_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o martyr_n both_o english_a and_o forreign_n as_o well_o famous_a for_o their_o learning_n as_o great_a fidelity_n that_o express_v themselves_o full_o in_o defence_n of_o our_o assertion_n that_o to_o bring_v man_n and_o woman_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o everlasting_a word_n nigh_o in_o the_o heart_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v repugnant_a to_o or_o undervalue_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o without_o their_o acquaintance_n with_o it_o and_o conformity_n to_o it_o they_o can_v never_o be_v read_v by_o any_o with_o instruction_n and_o comfort_n but_o if_o god_n please_v there_o may_v be_v a_o time_n for_o our_o more_o full_a disquisition_n of_o this_o point_n but_o be_v think_v to_o supply_v his_o wilful_a omission_n and_o disingenuous_a carriage_n about_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o ill_a use_n he_o make_v of_o my_o other_o proof_n by_o reflect_v upon_o my_o honesty_n in_o transscribe_v his_o second_o take_v out_o of_o our_o friend_n james_n parn●ll_n his_o book_n entitle_v the_o shield_n of_o the_o truth_n pag._n 10._o because_o i_o add_v not_o these_o word_n seek_v the_o live_n among_o the_o dead_a at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o sentence_n by_o the_o same_o light_n do_v we_o discern_v he_o to_o be_v in_o darkness_n who_o put_v the_o letter_n for_o the_o light_n and_o so_o draw_v people_n mind_n from_o the_o light_n within_o they_o to_o the_o light_n without_o they_o and_o as_o if_o he_o have_v full_o obtain_v his_o will_n upon_o we_o by_o make_v we_o speak_v what_o he_o untrue_o say_v we_o own_o and_o practice_n he_o go_v on_o this_o need_v no_o comment_n to_o render_v its_o proof_n valid_a and_o be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o the_o utmost_a stretch_n of_o penn_n '_o be_v wit_n and_o confidence_n to_o put_v any_o appearance_n of_o another_o construction_n upon_o it_o but_o methinks_v this_o sound_n render_v he_o very_o empty_a it_o must_v be_v a_o very_a plain_a case_n if_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o appearance_n of_o another_o construction_n can_v be_v make_v upon_o it_o than_o what_o he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o import_v but_o i_o be_o whole_o of_o another_o mind_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o make_v a_o very_a free_a and_o sufficient_a defence_n for_o the_o passage_n i_o ought_v to_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o whole_a of_o his_o objection_n lie_v against_o the_o word_n i_o omit_v inasmuch_o as_o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o reply_v to_o my_o vindication_n of_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o be_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o by_o turn_v people_n to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n we_o do_v not_o teach_v they_o to_o undervalue_v but_o how_o they_o shall_v most_o true_o understand_v and_o value_v the_o scripture_n that_o the_o spirit_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o letter_n the_o power_n than_o the_o form_n of_o godliness_n yet_o both_o letter_n and_o form_n to_o be_v respect_v in_o their_o place_n and_o that_o we_o only_o take_v our_o aim_n against_o such_o as_o put_v the_o letter_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o spirit_n thereby_o keep_v people_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o alone_o the_o scripture_n be_v read_v and_o understand_v unto_o edification_n and_o comfort_n my_o adversary_n i_o say_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o this_o i_o must_v think_v he_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v save_v his_o charge_n of_o the_o forementioned_a omission_n to_o which_o thus_o much_o it_o be_v not_o design_v i_o take_v and_o defend_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o passage_n for_o i_o will_v fai●_n know_v what_o life_n be_v to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o letter_n without_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o light_n or_o spirit_n of_o christ_n if_o then_o the_o letter_n be_v dead_a without_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v old_a protestant_a doctrine_n can_v it_o be_v any_o thing_n else_o then_o seek_v the_o live_n among_o the_o dead_a to_o draw_v people_n from_o the_o light_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n within_o to_o seek_v for_o life_n in_o the_o mere_a letter_n without_o ●or_a so_o the_o question_n run_v this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n in_o her_o apostasy_n and_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o thousand_o at_o this_o very_a day_n who_o under_o pretence_n of_o honour_v the_o scripture_n despise_v grieve_v and_o in_o a_o sense_n quench_v the_o spirit_n that_o give_v they_o forth_o for_o which_o god_n be_v wroth_a with_o the_o false_a christian_a and_o his_o religion_n &_o worship_n be_v a_o abomination_n in_o his_o sight_n and_o great_a &_o sudden_a will_v be_v their_o distress_n for_o his_o indignation_n be_v kindle_v and_o his_o fury_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v and_o in_o that_o day_n shall_v such_o lofty_a boaster_n as_o my_o adversary_n be_v bring_v ●●ow_o their_o spirit_n faint_v and_o heart_n fall_v within_o they_o ●at_a what_o time_n the_o light_n spirit_n and_o life_n of_o jesus_n shall_v be_v unto_o all_o that_o trust_v therein_o a_o rock_n of_o everlasting_a strength_n a_o immovable_a foundation_n and_o sanctuary_n full_a of_o comfort_n peace_n and_o joy_n forever_o and_o indeed_o this_o thing_n ●oth_v so_o deep_o affect_v my_o soul_n that_o i_o can_v refrain_v from_o ●rying_a woe_n wo_n wo_n against_o all_o such_o watchman_n of_o the_o night_n who_o rack_n their_o wit_n for_o tale_n and_o story_n to_o care_v well-meaning_a and_o devout_a people_n from_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o life_n virtue_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o scripture_n nick-naming_a that_o only_a way_n by_o which_o so_o great_a ●nd_n heavenly_a benefit_n can_v ever_o be_v procure_v i_o mean_v the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a with_o such_o hateful_a term_n ●s_a enthusiasm_n quakerism_n familism_n a_o more_o refine_a ●rt_n of_o ranterism_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o else_o may_v keep_v they_o ●_o their_o snare_n stop_v their_o enquiery_a and_o render_v the_o ●iving_n eternal_a truth_n of_o god_n odious_a in_o their_o sight_n ●etter_n be_v it_o for_o such_o that_o they_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v then_o ●nder_a pretence_n of_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o ●urder_v the_o life_n and_o spirit_n of_o it_o estrang_v the_o mind_n of_o people_n from_o that_o unchangeable_a covenant_n instead_o of_o in●teresting_v they_o in_o it_o thereby_o manifest_o deprive_v their_o soul_n of_o bless_a and_o eternal_a privilege_n they_o be_v like_o troop_n of_o robber_n indeed_o 9_o as_o the_o prophet_n ancient_o say_v they_o murder_v by_o consent_n most_o of_o they_o combine_v against_o the_o indwelling_a life_n of_o jesus_n and_o immediate_a springing_n and_o flow_n forth_o of_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o child_n let_v it_o never_o be_v forget_v that_o the_o first_o murderer_n be_v a_o sacrificer_n and_o the_o deadly_a persecutor_n a_o pharisee_fw-mi nor_o have_v there_o be_v a_o more_o venomous_a enrage_v bloodthirsty_a generation_n of_o man_n than_o the_o formal_a literal_a professor_n who_o ever_o call_v god_n father_n and_o christ_n beelzebub_n who_o crucify_v his_o son_n and_o persecute_v the_o apostle_n repute_v they_o mad_a man_n that_o be_v fanatic_n or_o enthusiast_n seditious_a fellow_n sect-master_n introducer_n of_o new_a doctrine_n innovator_n upon_o the_o church_n turner_n of_o the_o world_n up-side_n down_o in_o fine_a despiser_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n while_o they_o themselves_o think_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n therein_o be_v of_o the_o circumcision_n son_n of_o abraham_n and_o child_n of_o the_o promise_n oh_o that_o these_o of_o our_o day_n may_v repent_v which_o those_o of_o that_o day_n do_v not_o lest_o neglect_v god_n present_a visitation_n neither_o enter_v themselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o bless_a rest_n the_o miserable_a doom_n of_o that_o hard-hearted_a generation_n overtake_v they_o and_o that_o speedy_o chap._n v._n of_o scripture-commands_a what_o be_v bind_v and_o what_o not_o our_o adversary_n disingenuity_n observe_v but_o however_o he_o have_v fail_v in_o his_o last_o chapter_n doubtless_o he_o think_v he_o have_v do_v my_o business_n in_o this_o 34_o he_o begin_v like_o himself_o rep._n my_o charge_n and_o argument_n in_o this_o chapter_n be_v the_o quaker_n affirm_v the_o doctrine_n command_n promise_n holy_a example_n express_v in_o scripture_n as_o such_o not_o to_o be_v at_o all_o bind_n to_o we_o such_o a_o argument_n and_o so_o prove_v by_o i_o mark_n reader_n as_o a_o thousand_o penn_n can_v never_o invalid_a it_o
far_o beneath_o those_o noble_a gentile_n who_o not_o have_v a_o outward_a law_n be_v a_o law_n unto_o themselves_o have_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o write_v in_o their_o heart_n their_o conscience_n bear_v witness_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o we_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o such_o as_o ever_o act_v from_o that_o inward_a sense_n never_o think_v they_o do_v god_n good_a service_n in_o kill_v his_o servant_n whilst_o great_a admirer_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o who_o as_o concern_v this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o murder_n think_v themselves_o most_o unblamable_a believe_v they_o do_v god_n good_a service_n in_o kill_v his_o servant_n nor_o can_v i_o think_v it_o so_o great_a a_o disgrace_n to_o our_o cause_n that_o we_o ingenuous_o profess_v the_o reason_n why_o we_o desire_v to_o fear_n god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n do_v unto_o other_o as_o we_o will_v have_v they_o do_v unto_o we_o not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o conviction_n of_o the_o eternal_a light_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o our_o conscience_n as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v unto_o john_n faldo_n and_o his_o adherent_n who_o ground_n their_o obedience_n upon_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o upon_o such_o internal_a conviction_n what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o say_v they_o can_v lie_v swear_v steal_v kill_v etc._n etc._n without_o any_o remorse_n do_v they_o not_o find_v such_o injunction_n and_o prohibition_n upon_o record_n a_o consequence_n so_o detestable_a yet_o so_o natural_a to_o their_o principle_n that_o if_o this_o render_v they_o not_o able_a guide_n to_o the_o very_a confine_n of_o rantism_n and_o atheism_n i_o shall_v glad_o ask_v a_o excuse_n for_o my_o ignorance_n but_o that_o i_o may_v leave_v nothing_o undo_v that_o may_v complete_a the_o satisfaction_n of_o every_o moderate_a inquirer_n i_o shall_v further_o weigh_v and_o rejoin_v to_o these_o word_n of_o he_o they_o who_o think_v they_o do_v god_n good_a service_n in_o kill_v his_o servant_n do_v not_o sin_n in_o the_o least_o because_o they_o be_v not_o convince_v of_o a_o command_n to_o the_o contrary_a nor_o the_o idolater_n in_o the_o case_n of_o baal_n because_o they_o think_v baal_n to_o be_v a_o god_n indeed_o now_o reader_n observe_v the_o evasion_n this_o passage_n relate_v not_o to_o man_n practise_v what_o god_n command_v or_o our_o tenderness_n in_o imitate_v other_o saint_n without_o commission_n for_o fear_v we_o shall_v offer_v strange_a fire_n which_o be_v our_o question_n but_o their_o do_v that_o which_o god_n never_o command_v yea_o which_o mankind_n in_o all_o age_n have_v adjudge_v impious_a and_o which_o to_o be_v sure_a his_o holy_a spirit_n that_o e._n b._n say_v all_o man_n shall_v wait_v to_o be_v convince_v assist_v and_o lead_v by_o in_o fulfil_v god_n commandment_n never_o move_v any_o to_o he_o unworthy_o draw_v a_o general_a conclusion_n against_o we_o from_o mere_a particular_a premise_n it_o seem_v man_n be_v to_o act_v without_o if_o not_o against_o conviction_n upon_o his_o principle_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o he_o to_o commit_v moral_a enormity_n from_o a_o harden_a heart_n and_o to_o be_v tender_a of_o take_v up_o any_o external_a practice_n or_o perform_v some_o religious_a duty_n without_o the_o conviction_n and_o leading_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o apostle_n say_v to_o such_o as_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o so_o full_a clearness_n as_o other_o 15._o that_o if_o any_o be_v otherwise-minded_n god_n will_v reveal_v it_o he_o do_v not_o enjoin_v they_o during_o that_o scruple_n to_o believe_v or_o practise_v the_o thing_n doubt_v but_o therefore_o do_v persecutor_n act_v inexcusable_o in_o their_o fiery_a zeal_n because_o their_o blind_a conscience_n check_v they_o not_o again_o if_o blindness_n come_v from_o education_n it_o be_v though_o blindness_n still_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v base_o do_v of_o j._n faldo_n to_o say_v in_o our_o name_n that_o it_o be_v not_o sin_n in_o the_o least_o etc._n etc._n more_o excusable_a for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o such_o ignorance_n god_n wink_v but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o blindness_n proceed_v from_o long_a disobedience_n and_o rebellion_n against_o the_o conviction_n and_o strive_n of_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n as_o his_o word_n harden_a imply_v then_o i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o only_o very_o heinous_a in_o god_n sight_n but_o those_o person_n can_v never_o be_v excuse_v neither_o from_o great_a gild_n nor_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o in_o themselves_o let_v they_o or_o j._n f._n talk_n never_o so_o much_o of_o conscience_n beside_o the_o most_o essential_a and_o universal_o necessary_a command_n of_o god_n be_v through_o all_o age_n confess_v to_o both_o before_o there_o be_v any_o of_o those_o write_n we_o right_o call_v the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n from_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n as_o many_o stile_n it_o or_o rather_o the_o law_n god_n place_v in_o man_n nature_n and_o since_o where_o they_o have_v never_o be_v therefore_o whatever_o particular_a harden_a and_o sear_v conscience_n may_v say_v we_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o mankind_n and_o their_o own_o rebellion_n and_o lewdness_n against_o they_o but_o the_o word_n of_o j._n faldo_n in_o plain_a term_n import_v as_o if_o 1_o st_z man_n be_v not_o general_o convince_v of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o moral_a command_n of_o god_n but_o that_o man_n keep_v they_o because_o they_o be_v in_o the_o bible_n only_o which_o run_v against_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o consent_n of_o age_n and_o the_o write_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o honest_a and_o learned_a protestant_n 2_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o like_a evil_n conscientious_o to_o forbear_v run_v will_v and_o strive_v in_o matter_n of_o worship_n without_o the_o spirit_n be_v conduct_n and_o sear_o to_o plead_v for_o the_o commission_n of_o murder_n and_o idolatry_n because_o man_n of_o such_o conscience_n bogle_v not_o at_o it_o though_o that_o be_v more_o than_o j._n f._n can_v prove_v i_o mean_v that_o they_o have_v no_o stroke_n or_o remorse_n 3_o lie_n as_o if_o we_o can_v worship_v preach_v gather_v church_n and_o administer_v gospel-ordinance_n aright_o without_o the_o spirit_n 4_o lie_v that_o he_o be_v not_o convince_v by_o any_o other_o testimony_n than_o the_o scripture_n without_o of_o any_o transgression_n against_o god_n law_n 5_o lie_v it_o suppose_v that_o if_o man_n stay_v till_o the_o spirit_n move_v they_o shall_v stay_v long_o enough_o who_o vain_o prate_v of_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n notwithstanding_o never_o consider_v that_o the_o spirit_n stand_v ready_a to_o reveal_v itself_o to_o their_o assistance_n and_o assurance_n who_o wait_v for_o it_o and_o that_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v our_o position_n have_v it_o but_o be_v weigh_v by_o this_o adversary_n he_o can_v not_o methinks_v be_v so_o unjust_a in_o his_o aggravation_n it_o be_v true_a shall_v we_o believe_v as_o he_o do_v the_o spirit_n be_v not_o to_o be_v wait_v for_o now_o adays_o to_o lead_v we_o or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o our_o information_n when_o we_o wait_v for_o its_o discovery_n and_o leading_n our_o assertion_n will_v look_v very_o absurd_a and_o loose_a for_o it_o be_v to_o let_v fall_v all_o worship_n but_o not_o upon_o our_o own_o principle_n as_o i_o say_v before_o for_o first_o all_o worship_n to_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o of_o ourselves_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o that_o be_v good_a and_o second_o god_n spirit_n be_v ready_a to_o assist_v instruct_v and_o comfort_v those_o that_o wait_v diligent_o and_o patient_o for_o it_o yea_o god_n have_v give_v it_o to_o the_o rebellious_a that_o it_o may_v judge_v they_o if_o it_o do_v lead_v they_o it_o be_v such_o protestant_a doctrine_n that_o i_o wonder_v man_n shall_v not_o know_v their_o admire_a ancestor_n faith_n when_o they_o meet_v it_o oh_o great_a degeneration_n into_o hardness_n and_o ignorance_n last_o there_o be_v the_o same_o to_o be_v say_v against_o he_o that_o pretend_v to_o ground_n all_o upon_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o object_n against_o we_o who_o plead_v for_o the_o conviction_n of_o conscience_n which_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o jew_n murder_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n unanswerable_o prove_v there_o be_v a_o law_n that_o blasphemer_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o this_o law_n they_o apprehend_v jesus_n adjudge_v and_o get_v he_o to_o be_v execute_v these_o man_n above_o any_o age_n exalt_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a rule_n where_o lie_v the_o mistake_n not_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o in_o their_o blind_a and_o envious_a application_n of_o it_o now_o i_o ask_v if_o the_o only_a way_n
christian_n to_o read_v what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o two_o page_n quote_v of_o vilify_a reproach_n to_o the_o scripture_n if_o this_o be_v not_o oppose_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o the_o scripture_n the_o devil_n himself_o must_v despair_v of_o invent_v word_n to_o express_v it_o by_o thus_o far_o john_n faldo_n and_o indeed_o i_o must_v confef_n if_o all_o or_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v ever_o say_v or_o publish_v by_o william_n smith_n there_o be_v great_a cause_n for_o amazement_n and_o abhorrence_n too_o but_o what_o say_v i_o to_o this_o true_o enough_o but_o that_o j._n f._n be_v careful_a to_o conceal_v he_o bring_v in_o a_o small_a limb_n of_o my_o answer_n and_o then_o scare_n it_o with_o hard_a word_n take_v notice_n of_o his_o reply_n to_o what_o he_o venture_v to_o transscribe_n of_o my_o answer_n rep._n penn_n say_v vv._n smith_n reflect_v not_o in_o the_o least_o upon_o the_o scripture_n 41._o nor_o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v true_o receive_v thence_o no_o such_o word_n can_v be_v produce_v by_o our_o adversary_n no_o jesuit_n in_o the_o world_n do_v ever_o outdo_v vv._n p._n in_o equivocation_n and_o subterfuge_n his_o stress_n lie_v on_o the_o word_n true_o receive_v thence_o rejoin_v suppose_v they_o to_o be_v my_o stress_n what_o subterfuge_n lie_v there_o be_v there_o not_o doctrine_n false_o deduce_v through_o man_n ignorance_n of_o the_o true_a intendment_n of_o scripture_n and_o do_v not_o such_o as_o confident_o think_v they_o to_o be_v true_o receive_v from_o scripture_n as_o if_o they_o real_o be_v so_o but_o the_o stress_n lie_v here_o with_o j._n f._n his_o religion_n can_v bear_v a_o scruting_n and_o be_v as_o well_o nigh_o as_o shy_a of_o a_o search_n as_o mahometism_n itself_o though_o have_v john_n faldo_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o gang_n continue_v where_o they_o be_v the_o poor_a quaker_n may_v have_v have_v a_o inquisition_n with_o a_o witness_n at_o their_o heel_n by_o this_o time_n but_o he_o have_v a_o further_a comment_n for_o we_o rep._n the_o quaker_n allow_v no_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_o receive_v from_o the_o scripture_n but_o such_o as_o be_v receive_v by_o immediate_a inspiration_n and_o not_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o write_v word_n rejoin_v where_o be_v the_o opposition_n now_o do_v not_o he_o set_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o least_o exclude_v the_o holy_a inspiration_n from_o any_o share_n in_o that_o authority_n and_o so_o do_v what_o he_o can_v to_o shuffle_v out_o the_o spirit_n from_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v if_o not_o the_o only_a yet_o the_o great_a proof_n of_o their_o authority_n since_o it_o be_v chief_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o ourselves_o that_o we_o know_v they_o to_o have_v be_v give_v forth_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o other_o as_o hold_v both_o the_o primitive_a christian_n our_o famous_a martyr_n and_o most_o considerable_a protestant_n he_o speak_v as_o if_o he_o affect_v obscurity_n and_o aim_v only_o at_o jumble_v and_o intricate_a instead_o of_o explain_v the_o matter_n but_o have_v we_o put_v the_o spirit_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o letter_n it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o the_o scripture_n have_v do_v before_o we_o as_o h._n bullenger_n that_o notable_a reformer_n observe_v upon_o rom._n 2._o 29._o the_o spirit_n say_v he_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o letter_n as_o when_o paul_n say_v the_o circumcision_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v the_o circumcision_n that_o consist_v in_o spirit_n not_o in_o the_o letter_n and_o again_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v we_o able_a minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o letter_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o letter_n kill_v but_o the_o spirit_n give_v life_n 4_o dec._n 8_o serm._n a_o notable_a application_n to_o our_o purpose_n but_o while_o we_o only_o so_o oppose_v they_o as_o to_o give_v the_o preference_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n j._n f._n fall_v foul_a of_o we_o for_o a_o pack_n of_o enthusiast_n shut_v out_o the_o spirit_n at_o least_o set_v it_o aside_o to_o exalt_v the_o letter_n but_o what_o do_v he_o mean_v by_o these_o term_n immediate_a inspiration_n for_o a_o mediate_v inspiration_n i_o never_o hear_v of_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o inspiration_n be_v god_n own_o breathe_v into_o the_o soul_n by_o which_o it_o have_v understanding_n give_v it_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o thing_n write_v or_o not_o write_v and_o how_o that_o can_v be_v do_v and_o not_o immediate_o i_o know_v not_o if_o he_o will_v exchange_v his_o impertinent_a distinction_n of_o mediate_v and_o immediate_a for_o ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a we_o shall_v allow_v he_o more_o than_o we_o can_v upon_o the_o other_o for_o by_o ordinary_a inspiration_n or_o revelation_n i_o understand_v such_o daily_a and_o common_a vision_n and_o discovery_n to_o the_o soul_n as_o concern_v it_o in_o its_o general_a station_n respect_v god_n and_o man_n by_o extraordinary_a such_o as_o great_a foresight_n or_o divine_a prospect_n which_o give_v to_o foretell_v or_o prophesy_v thing_n to_o come_v or_o decide_v some_o signal_n controversy_n or_o very_o special_a case_n of_o difficulty_n the_o first_o be_v what_o i_o speak_v of_o and_o do_v affirm_v that_o neither_o can_v the_o scripture_n be_v understand_v our_o soul_n feed_v and_o comfort_v nor_o our_o duty_n to_o god_n right_o perform_v without_o it_o the_o last_o be_v a_o case_n so_o peculiar_a that_o all_o along_o it_o be_v plain_a i_o never_o intend_v it_o but_o if_o by_o immediate_a inspiration_n respect_v we_o he_o understand_v that_o from_o thence_o forward_o we_o cast_v off_o all_o scripture_n as_o a_o antiquate_a or_o insignificant_a piece_n of_o business_n which_o be_v yet_o word_n too_o modest_a for_o his_o malice_n to_o father_n upon_o we_o as_o i_o shall_v anon_o make_v appear_v then_o do_v he_o wrong_v we_o and_o our_o doctrine_n to_o a_o high_a degree_n and_o no_o matter_n what_o he_o think_v of_o i_o or_o what_o name_n he_o may_v please_v to_o call_v i_o who_o be_v too_o far_o go_v in_o his_o present_a splenetic_a disease_n to_o think_v any_o better_a of_o such_o as_o i_o be_o i_o shall_v plain_o set_v down_o what_o be_v my_o mean_v by_o the_o word_n he_o cavil_v at_o viz._n true_o receive_v thence_o i_o hope_v to_o their_o satisfaction_n who_o will_v be_v more_o disinterested_n in_o their_o judgement_n by_o doctrine_n true_o own_v and_o receive_v from_o scripture_n we_o mean_v such_o holy_a truth_n as_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n enlighten_v our_o understanding_n have_v give_v we_o a_o true_a discern_v of_o to_o be_v such_o and_o those_o be_v they_o which_o we_o put_v in_o opposition_n to_o man_n carnal_a interpretation_n upon_o and_o imaginary_a deduction_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o that_o we_o clash_v the_o spirit_n be_v inspiration_n against_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o harmonise_v and_o bear_v reciprocal_a testimony_n to_o each_o other_o and_o this_o god_n that_o know_v all_o heart_n both_o know_v to_o be_v our_o true_a sense_n in_o the_o matter_n controvert_v and_o will_v one_o day_n abundant_o prove_v to_o our_o adversary_n eternal_a conviction_n this_o i_o fear_v j._n faldo_n will_v never_o swallow_v and_o why_o because_o it_o will_v choke_v he_o perhaps_o i_o must_v be_v a_o jesuit_n a_o equivocator_n and_o what_o else_o he_o please_v but_o wherefore_o because_o it_o strike_v at_o his_o honesty_n indeed_o dishonesty_n for_o he_o have_v rather_o we_o be_v what_o he_o say_v we_o be_v then_o receive_v a_o contradiction_n by_o find_v we_o otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v so_o confident_o represent_v we_o to_o be_v so_o much_o dear_a be_v humour_n pride_n and_o worldly_a credit_n to_o he_o than_o our_o being_n not_o so_o mistake_v as_o he_o think_v for_o be_v this_o man_n like_o to_o make_v convert_v that_o first_o maim_n my_o answer_n and_o then_o either_o pelt_v what_o he_o do_v take_v with_o dirt_n or_o if_o one_o sense_n worse_o than_o another_o may_v be_v have_v that_o usher_v in_o with_o a_o rant_n and_o wound_v up_o with_o a_o quibble_n must_v be_v give_v for_o a_o apt_a and_o irrefutable_a reply_n this_o have_v hitherto_o be_v his_o practice_n and_o we_o now_o go_v upon_o both_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o more_o evident_o to_o clear_v the_o truth_n in_o that_o little_a piece_n of_o my_o answer_n he_o crop_v off_o from_o the_o rest_n for_o after_o his_o wont_a manner_n he_o think_v it_o not_o best_o for_o he_o to_o encounter_v it_o at_o large_a but_o a_o snap_n and_o away_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o can_v produce_v no_o such_o word_n as_o tradition_n of_o man_n earthly_a root_n darkness_n confusion_n corruption_n deceitful_a whore_n cup_n etc._n etc._n
in_o his_o own_o unclean_a wisdom_n to_o be_v perform_v at_o his_o own_o time_n and_o in_o his_o own_o will_n which_o i_o answer_v thus_o it_o seem_v then_o that_o what_o prayer_n w._n smith_n passage_n reflect_v upon_o be_v gospel-prayer_n in_o j._n faldo_n account_n of_o this_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n he_o may_v think_v it_o be_v his_o in●●st_n but_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v not_o his_o honesty_n to_o omit_v it_o for_o it_o be_v to_o entitle_v prayer_n hateful_a to_o god_n gospel_n that_o he_o may_v have_v his_o will_n of_o we_o in_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o we_o deny_v gospel-prayer_n he_o be_v far_o from_o the_o carriage_n of_o a_o worthy_a and_o generous_a adversary_n in_o this_o that_o know_v how_o apt_a many_o be_v to_o receive_v any_o charge_n against_o we_o will_v have_v act_v deliberate_o and_o faithful_o as_o one_o concern_v by_o the_o constraint_n of_o conscience_n when_o he_o alas_o send_v his_o many_o charge_n as_o false_a as_o black_a to_o incense_v the_o ignorant_a and_o credulous_n against_o we_o revenge_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o some_o hearer_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v animate_v he_o to_o this_o unchristian_a essay_n but_o he_o proceed_v thus_o that_o we_o own_v no_o prayer_n that_o be_v not_o by_o immediate_a inspiration_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o without_o the_o use_n of_o our_o conception_n and_o direction_n of_o our_o understanding_n he_o bring_v two_o or_o three_o testimony_n to_o confirm_v this_o limb_n of_o his_o charge_n i_o avoid_v report_v they_o by_o confess_v the_o matter_n my_o business_n be_v therefore_o to_o mantain_n our_o assertion_n in_o order_n to_o which_o i_o produce_v john_n 4._o 24._o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o leave_v out_o and_o from_o thence_o i_o give_v the_o argument_n by_o he_o repeat_v which_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v witless_a and_o truthless_a as_o if_o say_v he_o the_o understanding_n conception_n and_o will_n of_o man_n in_o prayer_n must_v needs_o exclude_v the_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n exclude_v they_o but_o this_o reader_n we_o will_v easy_o scatter_v for_o if_o man_n offer_v up_o his_o own_o conception_n he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o offer_v up_o what_o be_v inject_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o alone_a god_n child_n cry_v abba_n father_n for_o by_o man_n own_o conception_n i_o mean_v what_o simple_o proceed_v from_o man_n and_o where_o any_o man_n pray_v such_o conception_n he_o must_v needs_o exclude_v the_o injection_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o offer_v up_o a_o unclean_a sacrifice_n else_o there_o will_v be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o wicked_a the_o will_n of_o man_n in_o prayer_n be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o first_o boook_v but_o if_o by_o will_v he_o mean_v man_n pray_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o how_o and_o when_o he_o please_v we_o also_o deny_v that_o for_o how_o can_v he_o be_v say_v to_o pray_v with_o th●_n spirit_n and_o worship_n in_o the_o spirit_n who_o act_v without_o the_o will_n guidance_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o if_o h●_n mean_v the_o will_n of_o man_n subject_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n an●_n r●le_a of_o the_o spirit_n than_o we_o say_v such_o prayer_n be_v not_o in_o t●●_n will_v of_o man_n proper_o but_o in_o his_o will_n to_o who_o the_o will●_n man_n be_v subject_v that_o be_v proper_o do_v in_o the_o will_n of_o man_n which_o be_v do_v at_o man_n disposal_n or_o be_v in_o man_n power_n to_o perform_v but_o it_o be_v not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o man_n will_n to_o offer_v up_o a_o spiritual_a prayer_n consequent_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o furnish_v man_n with_o that_o capacity_n so_o that_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n we_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o will_n subject_v but_o the_o will_v absolute_a and_o that_o we_o exclude_v the_o will_n of_o man_n in_o that_o case_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o will_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n life_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o i_o paul_n that_o live_v but_o christ_n in_o i_o it_o be_v not_o i_o paul_n that_o pray_v but_o the_o spirit_n that_o pray_v in_o i_o that_o be_v i_o paul_n live_v by_o and_o through_o the_o life_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o in_o subjection_n to_o he_o and_o i_o paul_n pray_v by_o and_o through_o the_o spirit_n and_o in_o subjection_n to_o its_o holy_a motion_n i_o distinguish_v between_o thing_n be_v do_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n for_o paul_n may_v pray_v not_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n but_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o yet_o not_o pray_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o will_n because_o resign_v of_o his_o own_o will_n unto_o the_o power_n and_o leading_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o be_v act_v by_o that_o whereby_o he_o receive_v a_o new_a will_n even_o the_o will_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o do_v not_o resist_v or_o act_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o spirit_n though_o not_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will._n but_o for_o our_o adversary_n to_o say_v we_o deny_v the_o use_n of_o our_o understanding_n in_o prayer_n be_v a_o great_a mistake_n if_o not_o a_o slander_n that_o which_o i_o object_v against_o be_v a_o other_o word_n by_o he_o carelef_o or_o design_o omit_v to_o wit_n the_o direction_n of_o our_o understanding_n for_o there_o be_v as_o much_o difference_n between_o the_o use_n of_o our_o understanding_n and_o direction_n of_o our_o understanding_n as_o between_o a_o master_n and_o a_o servant_n as_o to_o command_v &_o obey_v understanding_n be_v always_o make_v use_v of_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o prayer_n for_o without_o it_o there_o will_v be_v no_o subject_a for_o the_o spirit_n to_o act_v or_o work_v upon_o but_o the_o direction_n of_o our_o understanding_n in_o prayer_n be_v perfect_o exclusive_a of_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o there_o can_v be_v two_o director_n beside_o if_o the_o direction_n in_o prayer_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o understanding_n there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v that_o may_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o spirit_n wherefore_o say_v we_o the_o understanding_n be_v not_o to_o direct_v but_o to_o be_v direct_v in_o prayer_n to_o almighty_a god_n by_o his_o own_o holy_a spirit_n according_a to_o that_o notable_a passage_n rom._n 8._o 26_o 27._o the_o spirit_n also_o help_v our_o infirmity_n for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o as_o we_o ought_v but_o the_o spirit_n itself_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o with_o groan_n which_o can_v be_v utter_v and_o he_o that_o search_v the_o heart_n know_v what_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o he_o make_v intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n i_o offer_v eight_o argument_n in_o defence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n whereof_o he_o cite_v but_o one_o and_o say_v no_o more_o to_o it_o then_o i_o have_v report_v for_o that_o little_a he_o add_v be_v but_o a_o aggravation_n of_o his_o forementioned_a consequence_n 133._o seven_o then_o of_o my_o argument_n remain_v unmedle_v with_o 14._o i_o will_v hint_n at_o three_o to_o show_v not_o any_o reason_n but_o my_o adversary_n shuffle_v if_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o not_o by_o their_o own_o will_v conception_n and_o direction_n than_o no_o access_n to_o god_n without_o it_o consequent_o prayer_n without_o the_o lead_v of_o god_n spirit_n be_v not_o acceptable_a with_o he_o again_o if_o no_o prophecy_n or_o preach_v be_v to_o be_v of_o old_a but_o by_o the_o revelation_n or_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n though_o but_o to_o mortal_a man_n of_o far_o great_a reason_n shall_v not_o any_o prayer_n be_v make_v to_o the_o eternal_a only_o wise_a god_n without_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n last_o man_n of_o himself_o be_v unable_a to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n and_o as_o the_o professor_n say_v from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n altogether_o unclean_a therefore_o he_o can_v not_o perform_v gospel-prayer_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o own_o understanding_n use_v of_o his_o own_o conception_n and_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o will._n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v my_o four_o argument_n which_o with_o those_o that_o go_v before_o and_o follow_v after_o it_o my_o adversary_n unmanful_o decline_v i_o will_v conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o six_o testimony_n the_o first_o out_o of_o a_o venerable_a author_n with_o almost_o all_o nonconformist_n j._n calvin_n in_o one_o of_o his_o
not_o say_v by_o i_o concern_v the_o last_o passage_n in_o which_o lie_v the_o difficulty_n to_o wit_n i_o the_o light_n in_o they_o but_o the_o first_o on_o which_o he_o very_o little_o insist_v himself_o viz._n that_o the_o light_n be_v the_o eternal_a god_n etc._n etc._n this_o transpose_n of_o my_o answer_n and_o exchange_v it_o be_v not_o ingenuous_a this_o reader_n in_o short_a i_o offer_v as_o the_o explanation_n of_o g._n f_n expression_n and_o the_o conclusion_n of_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o too_o large_a to_o be_v recite_v viz._n that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o eternal_a fountain_n of_o all_o life_n and_o sun_n of_o light_n cause_v his_o light_n to_o visit_v the_o heart_n and_o shine_v in_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o mankind_n as_o well_o of_o such_o as_o rebel_v against_o it_o and_o scorn_v it_o to_o reprove_v they_o as_o of_o those_o who_o receive_v it_o and_o glad_o submit_v to_o it_o to_o direct_v and_o justify_v they_o wherefore_o we_o utter_o deny_v that_o the_o manifestation_n in_o man_n strict_o consider_v be_v the_o most_o high_a god_n but_o a_o manifestation_n of_o god_n and_o from_o god_n by_o the_o in-shining_a of_o his_o bless_a light_n and_o we_o can_v be_v say_v to_o worship_v the_o manifestation_n but_o that_o eternal_a god_n who_o be_v light_n that_o be_v thereby_o manifest_v p._n 194._o the_o next_o testimony_n bring_v by_o he_o and_o examine_v by_o we_o be_v out_o of_o e._n burroughs_n true_a faith_n etc._n etc._n for_o page_n he_o give_v we_o none_o neither_o then_o nor_o now_o but_o suppose_v true_a citation_n a_o thing_n most_o unusual_a with_o he_o i_o will_v set_v down_o his_o word_n as_o they_o lie_v reply_v p._n 85._o the_o next_o w._n p._n bring_v off_o as_o clear_o every_o man_n have_v that_o which_o be_v one_o in_o union_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o good_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o measure_n e._n burrough_n can_v any_o man_n say_v w._n p._n be_v so_o stupid_a as_o to_o think_v that_o e._n b._n ever_o intend_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o pure_o and_o simple_o constitute_v he_o such_o for_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o that_o universal_a grace_n light_n spirit_n which_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o all_o etc._n etc._n he_o pure_o and_o simple_o constitute_v be_v pure_a learned_a nonsense_n if_o what_o every_o man_n have_v be_v as_o good_a in_o kind_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o e._n b._n confess_v it_o must_v be_v god_n and_o christ_n rejoynder_n he_o shall_v either_o have_v past_o the_o manner_n of_o my_o expression_n or_o have_v correct_v it_o better_o but_o i_o have_v rather_o be_v guilty_a of_o nonsense_n then_o horrible_a perversion_n j._n f_n crime_n for_o he_o apply_v that_o to_o the_o mere_a soul_n of_o man_n which_o e._n b._n not_o only_o intend_v but_o express_v of_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n within_o men._n i_o will_v set_v down_o some_o of_o his_o word_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o indeleable_a brand_n upon_o j._n f._n a_o notorious_a abuser_n of_o our_o write_n e._n burrough_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o j._n bunnion_n and_o this_o passage_n heathen_n turk_n jew_n atheist_n have_v that_o that_o do_v convince_v of_o sin_n yet_o be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o that_o they_o delight_v to_o serve_v their_o lust_n thus_o express_v himself_o do_v they_o serve_v sin_n or_o lust_n because_o christ_n have_v not_o give_v they_o light_n to_o discover_v their_o sin_n or_o because_o they_o hate_v the_o light_n that_o be_v give_v they_o tell_v i_o 144._o be_v not_o the_o light_n or_o spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a thing_n that_o do_v convince_v of_o sin_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n convince_v of_o sin_n contrary_a or_o beside_o or_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n if_o nay_o than_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o it_o be_v from_o or_o by_o or_o something_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o the_o heathen_n e._n b._n argue_v and_o about_o five_o or_o six_o line_n low_a thus_o conclude_v till_o thou_o prove_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n which_o thou_o confess_v every_o man_n have_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n i_o shall_v say_v every_o man_n have_v that_o which_o be_v one_o in_o union_n with_o and_o like_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o good_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o its_o measure_n now_o let_v j._n faldo_n blush_v if_o he_o can_v certain_o reader_n great_a injustice_n can_v not_o well_o have_v be_v act_v towards_o any_o man_n write_n than_o he_o have_v act_v in_o this_o particular_a for_o what_o be_v clear_a then_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v no_o further_o concern_v in_o e._n b_n word_n then_o that_o it_o onght_n to_o obey_v the_o light_n and_o spirit_n he_o w●●●es_v of_o i_o tell_v he_o this_o before_o as_o that_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n he_o have_v transcribe_v into_o his_o reply_n show_n to_o wit_n that_o e._n b._n be_v speak_v of_o the_o universal_a grace_n light_n or_o spirit_n which_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o all_o etc._n etc._n of_o which_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n but_o think_v a_o epitome_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o accusation_n and_o wrest_v reply_n enough_o to_o my_o answer_n but_o which_o be_v yet_o base_a he_o have_v the_o confidence_n for_o all_o this_o to_o cry_v out_o against_o shift_a and_o evasion_n but_o to_o make_v it_o yet_o plain_o i_o will_v set_v it_o down_o more_o distinct_o e._n b._n every_o man_n have_v that_o which_o be_v as_o good_a and_o like_a the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n j._n f._n then_o every_o man_n soul_n be_v as_o good_a and_o like_a the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n whi●h_n be_v god_n therefore_o the_o soul_n be_v god_n w._n p._n answer_n e._n b._n understand_v it_o not_o of_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o universal_a grace_n light_n or_o spirit_n therefore_o no_o proof_n j._n f._n if_o what_o every_o man_n have_v be_v as_o good_a in_o kind_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o e._n b._n confess_v it_o must_v be_v god_n and_o christ_n w._n p._n that_o which_o e._n b._n confess_v be_v of_o the_o light_n or_o spirit_n and_o not_o the_o soul_n therefore_o j._n f_n charge_v be_v false_a now_o reader_n what_o shall_v we_o call_v this_o but_o petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n a_o repeat_n of_o his_o perversion_n it_o be_v so_o because_o i_o will_v have_v it_o so_o as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v charge_v they_o high_o than_o any_o more_o than_o that_o i_o pretend_v to_o bring_v their_o own_o book_n for_o evidence_n if_o i_o yield_v to_o have_v pervert_v they_o my_o credit_n be_v go_v my_o book_n be_v despise_v and_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o my_o gain_n be_v lose_v but_o to_o the_o next_o reply_v p._n 86._o that_o of_o fox_n he_o deal_v treacherous_o in_o leave_v out_o the_o proposition_n to_o which_o the_o answer_n be_v make_v and_o thereby_o its_o sense_n also_o f._n bring_v in_o the_o priest_n say_v it_o be_v a_o expression_n of_o a_o dark_a mind_n to_o say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o his_o saint_n to_o which_o he_o reple_n he_o be_v a_o reprobate_n and_o out_o of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n what_o can_v be_v better_o prove_v if_o god_n be_v not_o distinct_a from_o they_o not_o only_o their_o soul_n but_o the_o composition_n of_o the_o saint_n soul_n and_o body_n be_v god_n but_o if_o this_o passage_n do_v not_o prove_v p._n a_o design_a deluder_n none_o in_o the_o world_n will_n rejoynder_n the_o substance_n of_o my_o answer_n take_v in_o the_o priest_n assertion_n but_o that_o j._n faldo_n almost_o always_o take_v care_n to_o conceal_v g._n f._n write_v not_o like_o a_o philosopher_n but_o a_o honest_a plain_a christian_a man_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o disadvantage_n to_o our_o cause_n that_o either_o willing_o or_o through_o unskilfulness_n he_o neglect_v they_o for_o he_o mean_v by_o not_o be_v distinct_a that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o a_o distance_n in_o point_n of_o place_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o dwell_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n in_o his_o people_n it_o be_v apparent_a g._n f._n intend_a no_o more_o by_o his_o answer_n which_o our_o adversary_n in_o his_o first_o book_n give_v in_o these_o word_n but_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o saint_n and_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o he_o the_o priest_n be_v a_o reprobate_n and_o out_o of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n we_o see_v by_o this_o that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o soul_n be_v god_n and_o christ_n but_o whether_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v at_o a_o distance_n from_o or_o dwell_v in_o the_o saint_n yea_o or_o nay_o i_o leave_v it_o with_o my_o reader_n
the_o invalidity_n of_o john_n faldo_n vindication_n of_o his_o book_n call_v quakerism_n no_o christianity_n be_v a_o rejoynder_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o answer_n entitle_v quakerism_n a_o new_a nickname_n for_o old_a christianity_n wherein_o many_o weighty_a gospel-truths_n be_v handle_v and_o the_o disingenuous_a carriage_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v observe_v for_o the_o better_a information_n of_o all_o moderate_a inquirer_n in_o two_o part_n by_o w._n p._n who_o love_v not_o controversy_n for_o controversy_n sake_n every_o day_n they_o wrest_v my_o word_n all_o their_o thought_n be_v against_o i_o for_o evil_a psa_fw-la 56._o 5._o but_o he_o that_o do_v a_o wrong_n shall_v receive_v for_o the_o wrong_n which_o he_o have_v do_v col._n 3._o 23._o print_v in_o the_o year_n 1673._o to_o all_o that_o serious_o profess_v religion_n among_o those_o call_v episcopalian_o presbyterian_o independent_o anabaptist_n socinian_o and_o latitudinarian_o the_o duty_n i_o owe_v to_o almighty_a god_n and_o the_o respect_n i_o bear_v to_o his_o truth_n with_o that_o great_a concern_v which_o live_v in_o my_o mind_n for_o your_o better_a information_n about_o we_o a_o poor_a people_n traduce_v by_o some_o despise_v by_o other_o and_o our_o principle_n mis-given_a here_o pervert_v there_o be_v the_o only_a inducement_n i_o have_v to_o pursue_v this_o tedious_a and_o unpleasant_a controversy_n and_o that_o you_o may_v be_v undeceive_v of_o those_o false_a apprehension_n vulgar_a story_n or_o the_o insinuation_n of_o more_o prevalent_a agent_n have_v impress_v you_o with_o i_o can_v god_n know_v be_v content_v that_o even_o suffering_n be_v add_v to_o my_o labour_n what_o will_v i_o not_o cheerful_o undergo_v to_o win_v you_o into_o a_o serious_a view_n and_o impartial_a consideration_n of_o our_o case_n true_o i_o have_v that_o belief_n of_o many_o of_o you_o that_o be_v the_o prejudice_n of_o education_n and_o common_a vogue_n of_o the_o world_n set_v aside_o you_o will_v do_v we_o some_o justice_n and_o i_o beseech_v you_o weigh_v how_o much_o it_o become_v you_o you_o the_o serious_a professor_n of_o religion_n to_o give_v we_o a_o fair_a hear_v for_o our_o principle_n and_o reputation_n before_o you_o final_o determine_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o to_o try_v all_o thing_n be_v a_o apostolical_a exhortation_n nor_o can_v you_o escape_v the_o censure_n of_o dis-regarding_a it_o if_o you_o decline_v a_o fair_a inquiery_a after_o we_o let_v not_o education_n be_v dear_a to_o you_o then_o truth_n and_o see_v if_o more_o be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v by_o you_o then_o yet_o you_o know_v object_v novelty_n ought_v to_o have_v no_o force_n with_o a_o christian_a since_o have_v that_o prevail_v he_o have_v never_o be_v one_o nor_o shall_v the_o offence_n formality_n or_o worldly_a learning_n take_v at_o we_o stave_v you_o off_o from_o a_o serious_a search_n much_o less_o the_o crucify_v crucify_v of_o the_o vulgar_a because_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n when_o manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o more_o of_o that_o then_o ever_o yet_o attend_v we_o indeed_o it_o shall_v rather_o be_v a_o argument_n for_o we_o believe_v we_o we_o entreat_v you_o when_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o religion_n pure_a and_o undefiled_a religion_n we_o great_o love_v it_o be_v that_o we_o desire_v as_o well_o to_o live_v as_o defend_v god_n know_v we_o have_v long_o make_v it_o the_o bend_v of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o whole_a aim_n of_o our_o life_n without_o it_o we_o be_v the_o miserable_a of_o man_n yet_o how_o be_v we_o defame_a undervalue_v contemn_a and_o set_v at_o nought_o for_o a_o company_n of_o seducer_n blasphemer_n idolater_n and_o what_o not_o but_o why_o because_o we_o be_v not_o understand_v and_o as_o cunning_o by_o some_o hinder_v from_o be_v so_o but_o therefore_o be_v this_o discourse_n more_o particular_o dedicate_v to_o you_o that_o you_o may_v be_v both_o acquaint_v with_o the_o foul_a charge_n one_o of_o our_o great_a enemy_n have_v exhibit_v against_o we_o his_o kind_n of_o witness_n produce_v to_o confirm_v they_o and_o his_o management_n of_o the_o whole_a debate_n with_o our_o plain_a and_o honest_a vindication_n if_o we_o shall_v be_v find_v guilty_a then_o let_v we_o be_v condemn_v for_o such_o as_o he_o have_v represent_v we_o to_o be_v but_o if_o innocent_a suffer_v we_o not_o any_o long_a to_o groan_v under_o the_o heavy_a pressure_n of_o such_o infamous_a accusation_n for_o in_o omit_v to_o right_v we_o for_o these_o grievous_a wrong_n you_o will_v make_v yourselves_o accessory_n to_o a_o injustice_n that_o must_v needs_o be_v detest_v of_o all_o virtuous_a and_o good_a men._n i_o leave_v this_o rejoynder_n with_o you_o contain_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o our_o wrest_v principle_n &_o those_o confirm_v by_o express_a scripture_n many_o reason_n and_o a_o cloud_n of_o testimony_n and_o shall_v conclude_v with_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o mitani_n jerome_n well-becoming_a all_o honest_a writer_n and_o fit_a to_o be_v observe_v of_o every_o impartial_a reader_n quaeso_fw-la lector_fw-la ut_fw-la memor_fw-la tribunalis_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr judicio_fw-la tuo_fw-la te_fw-la intelligens_fw-la judicandum_fw-la nec_fw-la mihi_fw-la nec_fw-la adversario_fw-la meo_fw-la faveas_fw-la neve_fw-la personas_fw-la loquentium_fw-la sed_fw-la causam_fw-la consideres_fw-la i_o beseech_v thou_o reader_n that_o remember_v the_o judgment-seat_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o understanding_n that_o as_o thou_o do_v judge_v so_o thou_o shall_v be_v judge_v thou_o favour_v neither_o i_o nor_o my_o adversary_n that_o write_v against_o i_o &_o that_o thou_o regard_v not_o the_o person_n but_o the_o cause_n only_o i_o be_o a_o real_a valuer_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v worthy_a in_o any_o of_o you_o and_o a_o hearty_a wisher_n of_o your_o improvement_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o lead_v to_o eternal_a peace_n which_o be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o light_n and_o life_n of_o righteousness_n william_n penn._n the_o content_n part_n i._n chap._n i._o of_o christianity_n in_o general_n pag._n 12._o chap._n ii_o of_o quakerism_n as_o this_o independent_a priest_n scoff_o call_v our_o holy_a religion_n pag._n 25._o chap._n iii_o of_o the_o scripture_n pag._n 31._o chap._n iu._n his_o pre●ence_n of_o our_o equal_v our_o own_o write_n and_o say_n with_o the_o scripture_n pag._n 41._o chap._n v._o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n p._n 68_o chap._n vi_o of_o our_o dehort_v people_n from_o read_v the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n as_o charge_v by_o this_o adversary_n pag._n 94._o chap._n vii_o of_o scripture-commands_a what_o be_v bind_v and_o what_o not_o our_o adversary_n disingenuity_n observe_v pag._n 103._o chap._n viii_o that_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n in_o opposition_n to_o and_o denial_n of_o our_o adversary_n charge_n pag._n 121._o chap._n ix_o not_o we_o but_o our_o adversary_n oppose_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o testimony_n bring_v by_o he_o clear_v and_o deliver_v from_o his_o application_n our_o doctrine_n prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o several_a testimony_n his_o frequent_a and_o gross_a perversion_n of_o our_o word_n and_o write_n discover_v and_o just_o rebuke_v pag._n 141._o part_n ii_o chap._n i._o of_o gospel-ordinance_n in_o general_a such_o true_o embrace_v pag._n 187._o chap._n ii_o of_o true_a and_o false_a ministry_n p._n 203._o chap._n iii_o that_o we_o own_o a_o gospel-church_n contrary_n to_o our_o adversary_n charge_n pag._n 217._o chap._n iu._n his_o charge_n of_o our_o deny_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n examine_v true_a preach_v acknowledge_v pag._n 237._o chap._n v._o of_o true_a and_o false_a prayer_n p._n 240._o chap._n vi_o of_o positive_a ordinance_n as_o our_o adversary_n call_v they_o to_o wit_n baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o baptism_n in_o particular_a pag._n 249._o chap._n vii_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n after_o supper_n common_o call_v the_o lord_n supper_n pag._n 264._o chap._n viii_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n pag._n 273._o chap._n ix_o of_o the_o true_a christ_n we_o own_o and_o our_o adversary_n prove_v to_o deny_v he_o pag._n 296._o chap._n x._o three_o scripture_n rescue_v from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o our_o adversary_n joh._n 1._o 9_o rom._n 10._o 8._o 2_o pet._n 1._o 19_o pag._n 317._o chap._n xi_o that_o we_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o idolatry_n as_o charge_v by_o our_o adversary_n true_a worshipper_n the_o charge_n invert_v pag._n 343._o chap._n xii_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o dead_a body_n and_o eternal_a recompense_n our_o doctrine_n maintain_v by_o scripture_n reason_n and_o authority_n pag._n 362._o chap._n xiii_o my_o adversary_n decline_v meddle_v with_o my_o appendix_n
the_o earth_n nor_o ever_o do_v for_o what_o else_o can_v be_v the_o consequence_n of_o his_o decry_v our_o principle_n that_o assert_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a light_n enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n or_o that_o the_o light_n wherewith_o every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v be_v not_o christ_n or_o god_n i_o affirm_v that_o which_o quarrel_v this_o principle_n will_v not_o in_o the_o very_a ground_n have_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n indeed_o not_o god_n to_o be_v god_n see_v it_o be_v a_o utter_a denial_n of_o his_o omni-presence_n since_o god_n be_v not_o manifest_v but_o by_o his_o own_o light_n and_o he_o be_v every_o where_o his_o light_n can_v be_v limit_v because_o it_o can_v be_v distinguish_v from_o himself_o but_o what_o our_o adversary_n will_v be_v at_o by_o this_o kind_n of_o reason_v he_o help_v we_o in_o his_o next_o particular_a to_o understand_v rep._n he_o attempt_v to_o excuse_v burroughs_n phrase_n from_o blasphemy_n viz._n your_o imagine_a god_n beyond_o the_o star_n but_o how_o they_o be_v express_v of_o people_n imagine_v he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n and_o so_o deny_v his_o omnipresence_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v below_o as_o well_o as_o above_o to_o which_o he_o reply_v thus_o a_o rare_a excuse_n that_o deny_v christ_n manhood_n and_o make_v the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v bodily_a to_o be_v a_o popish_a ubiquitary_a rejoin_v must_v this_o pass_v for_o my_o confutation_n a_o rare_a excuse_n indeed_o but_o for_o what_o not_o w._n penn_n denial_n of_o christ_n manhood_n but_o j._n faldo_n base_a perversion_n of_o e._n b_n word_n the_o question_n be_v not_o about_o christ_n manhood_n but_o of_o god_n himself_o who_o prepare_v it_o in_o time_n a_o pitiful_a shift_n to_o infer_v from_o god_n who_o be_v a_o spirit_n to_o christ_n body_n we_o know_v that_o be_v not_o every_o where_o but_o the_o word_n that_o be_v with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n be_v not_o confinable_a though_o if_o the_o truth_n be_v know_v j._n faldo_n zeal_n for_o christ_n not_o be_v a_o popish_a ubiquitary_a centre_n in_o his_o belief_n of_o mere_a anthropomorphism_n i_o mean_v that_o god_n be_v confine_v to_o a_o body_n and_o that_o body_n to_o a_o certain_a place_n else_o why_o shall_v he_o oppose_v to_o my_o assert_v of_o god_n universal_a presence_n christ_n manhood_n the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v bodily_a in_o that_o manhood_n and_o christ_n be_v resident_a in_o some_o particular_a place_n but_o it_o be_v after_o this_o lame_a crabbed_a and_o insignificant_a way_n of_o write_v that_o he_o vindicate_v his_o first_o piece_n of_o forgery_n and_o wicked_a mis-giving_a of_o our_o poor_a friend_n meaning_n but_o to_o proceed_v rep._n he_o tell_v you_o of_o the_o companion_n i_o render_v quakerism_n to_o be_v attend_v into_o the_o world_n with_o 7._o and_o add_v what_o else_o j._n faldo_n devil_n please_v yet_o instead_o of_o deny_v what_o i_o say_v except_o the_o epithet_n he_o thus_o excuse_v it_o final_o do_v not_o the_o devil_n howl_v and_o roar_v and_o tremble_v who_o see_v they_o shall_v be_v dislodge_v by_o one_o strong_a than_o themselves_o and_o be_v there_o no_o terror_n in_o all_o this_o yes_o very_o and_o morcover_v whereas_o people_n have_v take_v the_o quaker_n to_o be_v possess_v of_o the_o devil_n when_o so_o behave_v themselves_o mr._n penn_n have_v here_o confess_v they_o be_v not_o mistake_v and_o more_o than_o that_o too_o that_o they_o themselves_o be_v devil_n for_o it_o be_v they_o that_o roar_v rejoin_v if_o this_o be_v to_o be_v a_o fair_a adversary_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n i_o will_v transscribe_v for_o thy_o sake_n reader_n what_o i_o except_v against_o in_o his_o first_o book_n and_o how_o i_o answer_v it_o but_o once_o more_o christianity_n enter_v the_o world_n with_o ravish_a song_n and_o hallelujah_n of_o the_o angel_n 16._o heal_v all_o disease_n cast_v out_o devil_n preash_v peace_n but_o quakerism_n enter_v the_o world_n as_o if_o hell_n have_v break_v loose_a and_o possession_n by_o satan_n have_v make_v way_n and_o fit_a soul_n for_o the_o quaker_n spirit_n o_o the_o hell_n dark_a expression_n of_o the_o quaker_n spirit_n frightful_a and_o amaze_a word_n bitter_a curse_n howl_n and_o roar_n and_o what_o else_o j._n faldo_n devil_n please_v by_o which_o to_o render_v the_o quaker_n odious_a well!_o but_o to_o answer_v he_o it_o be_v a_o time_n of_o joy_n and_o a_o time_n of_o sorrow_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o just_o rejoice_v that_o he_o be_v bear_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n and_o that_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n rise_v who_o discover_v light_n and_o refresh_a beam_n will_v renew_v the_o world_n that_o have_v in_o great_a measure_n be_v bewilder_v since_o its_o first_o innocent_a state_n but_o therefore_o be_v it_o not_o a_o time_n of_o woe_n sorrow_n terror_n and_o grievous_a distress_n to_o all_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n do_v not_o christ_n come_v to_o bring_v war_n as_o well_o as_o peace_n a_o sword_n a_o fire_n upon_o earth_n do_v not_o his_o forerunner_n come_v in_o a_o astonish_a manner_n in_o differ_v attire_n of_o another_o diet_n and_o from_o a_o desolate_a place_n to_o preach_v repentance_n and_o to_o warn_v they_o with_o a_o o_o generation_n of_o viper_n to_o flee_v the_o wrath_n to_o come_v do_v he_o not_o say_v that_o a_o axe_n a_o sharp_a and_o terrible_a instrument_n shall_v be_v lay_v to_o every_o unfruitful_a tree_n and_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o prick_a of_o the_o heart_n of_o thousand_o and_o paul_n by_o name_n that_o faelix_fw-la himself_z tremble_v and_o all_o as_o know_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n themselves_o they_o warn_v other_o wherefore_o judgement_n be_v say_v to_o have_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n final_o do_v not_o the_o devil_n howl_v roar_v and_o tremble_v foresee_v they_o shall_v be_v dislodge_v by_o one_o strong_a than_o themselves_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o be_v there_o no_o terror_n dread_a and_o amazement_n in_o all_o this_o i_o perceive_v it_o may_v be_v a_o virtue_n in_o the_o primitive_a christian_n but_o a_o vice_n in_o the_o quaker_n at_o least_o in_o j._n faldo_n account_n but_o this_o know_v o_o impartial_a people_n the_o quaker_n be_v over-taken_a by_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o great_a be_v their_o travel_n and_o pang_n of_o sorrow_n under_o the_o righteous_a terror_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o hour_n of_o just_a judgement_n be_v come_v and_o be_v thereby_o make_v witness_n of_o his_o heavenly_a work_n and_o redeem_v through_o judgement_n they_o become_v minister_n of_o judgement_n unto_o other_o and_o the_o terror_n of_o it_o strike_v thousand_o the_o devil_n tremble_v etc._n etc._n and_o be_v thou_o give_v up_o john_n faldo_n to_o call_v light_n darkness_n and_o darkness_n light_n the_o terror_n of_o god_n the_o possession_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n hell_n break_v loose_a o_o unhappy_a man_n reader_n this_o be_v my_o answer_n how_o much_o of_o it_o he_o concern_v himself_o with_o i_o have_v already_o observe_v what_o use_v he_o make_v of_o that_o little_a cite_v be_v very_o obvious_a viz._n to_o conclude_v we_o devil_n what_o a_o false_a and_o frothy_a reflection_n be_v that_o for_o one_o that_o will_v be_v account_v a_o divine_a to_o call_v this_o a_o reply_n be_v to_o abuse_v controversy_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o quakerism_n be_v not_o attend_v with_o more_o amaze_a sigh_n and_o symptom_n than_o what_o our_o adversary_n must_v needs_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v the_o companion_n of_o christianity_n and_o as_o they_o agree_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o appearance_n so_o do_v j._n faldo_n and_o the_o pharisee_n in_o their_o judgement_n of_o both_o do_v john_n faldo_n conclude_v we_o little_a better_o than_o devil_n the_o pharisee_n call_v our_o lord_n and_o master_n beelzebub_n the_o prince_n of_o devil_n th●s_o have_v truth_n be_v ever_o account_v heresy_n by_o the_o priest_n and_o rabbi_n of_o that_o age_n in_o which_o it_o have_v appear_v we_o do_v the_o less_o wonder_n that_o john_n faldo_n shall_v understand_v of_o what_o spirit_n we_o be_v who_o be_v yet_o ignorant_a of_o his_o own_o and_o scoff_v at_o the_o revelation_n of_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n which_o can_v alone_o give_v he_o to_o relish_v either_o for_o the_o epithet_n he_o bestow_v upon_o quakerism_n they_o stink_v too_o much_o to_o be_v meddle_v with_o if_o they_o be_v christian_a there_o be_v nothing_o antichristian_a in_o the_o world_n to_o rebuke_v his_o revile_v he_o count_v rail_a and_o it_o be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n with_o his_o scold_a adherent_n that_o for_o the_o quaker_n not_o to_o pass_v by_o his_o
unworthy_a reflection_n however_o unprovoke_v without_o any_o reproof_n be_v to_o merit_v their_o sharp_a retort_v in_o the_o most_o vilify_a term_n i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o infer_v from_o such_o a_o humoursome_a carriage_n but_o that_o it_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o quaker_n religion_n it_o shall_v bear_v that_o which_o j._n faldo_n vindication_n tell_v we_o he_o can_v a_o great_a credit_n to_o our_o cause_n against_o his_o will._n thus_o far_o of_o christianity_n and_o quakerism_n as_o they_o be_v vvn_n by_o our_o adversary_n chap._n iii_o of_o the_o scripture_n my_o adversary_n begin_v his_o first_o chapter_n in_o his_o former_a discourse_n upon_o this_o general_a charge_n the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n the_o proof_n he_o offer_v be_v this_o the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o deny_v the_o scripture_n upon_o this_o account_n i_o thus_o deliver_v myself_o he_o entitules_a his_o chapter_n that_o the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n 24_o i_o be_v almost_o astonish_v at_o it_o because_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v all_o out_o of_o our_o own_o book_n and_o none_o such_o have_v ever_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n but_o upon_o perusal_n i_o find_v this_o to_o be_v the_o upshot_n that_o the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n my_o adversary_n reply_n be_v rep._n this_o be_v not_o the_o first_o cordial_n you_o have_v make_v of_o a_o wilful_a untruth_n 13._o nor_o yet_o the_o last_o by_o a_o great_a many_o and_o you_o who_o sum_v up_o nine_o argument_n of_o my_o more_o which_o be_v the_o content_n of_o the_o nine_o chapter_n next_o follow_v shall_v have_v be_v ashamed_a of_o call_v this_o one_o which_o be_v the_o first_o of_o ten_o the_o upshot_n and_o then_o insult_v but_o i_o shall_v try_v how_o you_o break_v this_o single_a cord_n this_o one_o of_o ten_o rejoin_v i_o will_v not_o say_v he_o have_v wilful_o wrong_v i_o but_o wrong_v i_o he_o have_v i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o upshot_n of_o his_o whole_a discourse_n concern_v the_o scripture_n but_o of_o that_o single_a chapter_n for_o have_v i_o repute_v his_o nine_o follow_a argument_n undeserving_a of_o any_o notice_n i_o may_v have_v call_v this_o single_a one_o the_o upshot_n but_o have_v single_o refute_v his_o subsequent_a argument_n i_o can_v not_o in_o good_a sense_n call_v the_o first_o the_o upshot_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o the_o upshot_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o of_o that_o chapter_n in_o which_o the_o word_n be_v use_v i_o have_v good_a reason_n so_o to_o term_v it_o since_o the_o proof_n be_v too_o particular_a for_o the_o charge_n it_o be_v not_o my_o wilful_a untruth_n but_o his_o mistake_n his_o suggest_v as_o if_o i_o only_o encounter_v that_o single_a cord_n be_v very_o disingenuous_a for_o i_o thorough_o consider_v nine_o follow_a chapter_n hear_v he_o further_o rep._n that_o you_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o grant_v but_o you_o say_v pag._n 25._o i_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o own_v they_o to_o be_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n with_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v show_v to_o be_v short_a of_o the_o main_a end_n of_o the_o scripture_n rejoin_v whether_o those_o other_o thing_n leave_v out_o be_v short_a of_o the_o main_a end_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o no_o will_v best_o be_v see_v by_o consider_v what_o those_o thing_n be_v i_o do_v declare_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o contain_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n in_o and_o to_o those_o age_n in_o which_o they_o be_v write_v be_v give_v forth_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n move_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n that_o they_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v read_v believe_v and_o fulfil_v in_o our_o day_n be_v useful_a for_o reproof_n and_o instruction_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a now_o if_o this_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o main_a end_n of_o scripture_n either_o there_o be_v none_o or_o they_o be_v unknown_a however_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d much_o the_o end_n as_o name_v of_o scripture_n that_o be_v then_o controvert_v again_o he_o go_v on_o thus_o rep._n i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v that_o one_o word_n may_v stand_v representative_a of_o many_o a_o odd_a phrase_n that_o represent_v he_o not_o able_a to_o express_v himself_o congruous_o 25._o i_o have_v hear_v of_o person_n as_o parliament-man_n but_o never_o of_o a_o representative_a word_n before_o rejoin_v he_o may_v have_v pardon_v i_o a_o incongruous_a phrase_n if_o such_o it_o have_v be_v for_o i_o have_v twenty_o time_n over_o be_v so_o kind_a to_o he_o but_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o it_o be_v not_o less_o proper_a though_o less_o use_v in_o word_n then_o in_o person_n he_o show_v ignorance_n in_o that_o philosophy_n he_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o master_n of_o where_o there_o be_v many_o single_a word_n or_o term_n that_o be_v significative_a of_o entire_a sentence_n but_o argumentum_fw-la ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la grant_v to_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o our_o adversary_n repute_v that_o title_n representative_a as_o well_o as_o expressive_a of_o those_o many_o thousand_o word_n contain_v therein_o char_n if_o so_o then_o there_o be_v a_o representative_a word_n if_o not_o it_o can_v never_o be_v call_v so_o in_o our_o adversary_n sense_n again_o he_o bring_v i_o in_o thus_o i_o think_v it_o be_v as_o good_a sense_n to_o call_v a_o king_n letter_n king_n as_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n rep._n but_o by_o your_o favour_n mr._n penn_n it_o be_v neither_o nonsense_n nor_o bad_a sense_n to_o call_v a_o king_n letter_n the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n 14._o rejoin_v this_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o stress_n lie_v here_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o title_n give_v to_o christ_n as_o the_o title_n king_n be_v to_o a_o supreme_a magistrate_n whether_o it_o be_v reverent_a or_o significant_a to_o call_v the_o declaration_n christ_n the_o word_n of_o god_n any_o more_o than_o to_o call_v the_o declaration_n of_o a_o king_n by_o the_o title_n of_o king_n for_o we_o therefore_o decline_v to_o give_v that_o title_n to_o any_o thing_n below_o christ_n himself_o to_o who_o the_o scripture_n most_o emphatical_o ascribe_v it_o because_o i_o say_v that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o word_n of_o advice_n reproof_n instruction_n 28._o which_o christ_n the_o great_a word_n of_o god_n live_o sow_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o christ_n speak_v of_o when_o he_o say_v the_o care_n of_o the_o world_n choke_v the_o word_n and_o it_o become_v unfruitful_a he_o reply_v rep._n 15._o here_o you_o have_v yield_v the_o cause_n to_o save_v christ_n from_o be_v the_o choke_v and_o unfruitful_a word_n rejoin_v i_o need_v not_o have_v do_v so_o for_o any_o such_o reason_n since_o christ_n may_v in_o a_o sense_n as_o well_o be_v choke_v as_o by_o sin_n afresh_o crucify_a and_o the_o spirit_n quench_v nor_o can_v unfruitful_a oblige_v i_o to_o give_v away_o the_o cause_n since_o the_o word_n be_v always_o vnfruitful_a where_o rebel_v against_o but_o be_v there_o no_o difference_n j._n faldo_n between_o a_o word_n of_o advice_n spiritual_o live_o and_o powerful_o sow_v in_o the_o heart_n by_o christ_n the_o great_a word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o advice_n reproof_n or_o instruction_n declare_v by_o write_v this_o bring_v to_o the_o point_n whether_o the_o scripture_n or_o christ_n may_v most_o deserve_o be_v style_v the_o word_n of_o god_n christ_n be_v god_n live_a oracle_n and_o right_o call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o that_o which_o live_o speak_v forth_o the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n the_o scripture_n be_v but_o that_o revelation_n declare_v and_o record_v consequent_o they_o can_v have_v no_o right_n to_o that_o title_n which_o be_v so_o suitable_o ascribe_v to_o the_o author_n of_o that_o revelation_n to_o be_v sure_a i_o faldo_n acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o live_n powerful_a self-sufficient_a word_n of_o god_n nor_o do_v he_o pretend_v to_o dispute_v for_o they_o to_o be_v such_o a_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o quaker_n deny_v they_o to_o be_v though_o it_o seem_v very_o strange_a to_o i_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o word_n of_o god_n the_o one_o quite_o differ_v from_o the_o other_o or_o that_o any_o word_n of_o god_n if_o two_o there_o be_v shall_v be_v of_o itself_o impotent_a or_o insufficient_a as_o he_o seem_v to_o allow_v in_o his_o first_o book_n pag_n 20_o 27._o vind._n pag._n 14_o 16._o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n
believe_v great_a and_o good_a thing_n of_o they_o and_o that_o from_o no_o less_o evidence_n than_o the_o eternal_a word_n that_o give_v they_o forth_o which_o have_v oftentimes_o give_v my_o soul_n a_o deep_a savour_n of_o those_o bless_a truth_n it_o declare_v of_o only_o we_o can_v allow_v they_o to_o be_v the_o word_n though_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o rather_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o see_v the_o great_a and_o general_a neglect_v that_o people_n be_v guilty_a of_o towards_o that_o live_n powerful_a regenerate_v word_n of_o life_n by_o who_o alone_o all_o right_a knowledge_n and_o last_a peace_n be_v derive_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n through_o this_o apprehension_n that_o in_o have_v the_o write_n they_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o look_v no_o far_o the_o very_a state_n of_o the_o profess_v jew_n of_o old_a who_o think_v better_o of_o the_o scripture_n then_o of_o christ_n believe_v to_o have_v life_n in_o they_o at_o what_o time_n they_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o glory_n from_o who_o proceed_n we_o learn_v thus_o much_o that_o the_o worst_a enemy_n to_o the_o invisible_a word_n of_o life_n may_v carry_v the_o great_a seem_a respect_n to_o and_o bestow_v the_o high_a title_n upon_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v give_v forth_o from_o it_o in_o short_a it_o be_v when_o man_n turn_v from_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n to_o the_o form_n only_o that_o they_o do_v canonize_v and_o lay_v so_o vast_a a_o stress_n upon_o they_o in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n they_o be_v so_o scatter_v that_o very_o few_o have_v all_o of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v not_o unreasonable_a for_o we_o to_o believe_v that_o many_o have_v none_o of_o they_o especial_o those_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v they_o therefore_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o a_o sufficient_a rule_n for_o faith_n and_o practice_n sure_o not_o it_o be_v a_o administration_n of_o life_n and_o power_n of_o write_v the_o law_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o put_v the_o spirit_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n from_o whence_o come_v that_o christian_a answer_n to_o the_o heathen_a concern_v swear_v fight_a &_o such_o contra-evangelical_n practice_n they_o can_v not_o do_v so_o because_o of_o god_n in_o their_o conscience_n at_o that_o time_n of_o day_n the_o anoint_v lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n when_o christian_n grow_v careless_a and_o worldly_n whereby_o they_o lose_v the_o power_n of_o godliness_n than_o they_o begin_v to_o set_v up_o a_o outward_a pompous_a religion_n ascribe_v that_o to_o the_o letter_n and_o form_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n and_o as_o thus_o enter_v the_o apostasy_n into_o the_o world_n so_o where_o man_n be_v not_o turn_v and_o conform_v to_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o divine_a immortal_a power_n the_o apostasy_n still_o remain_v and_o our_o end_n in_o press_a people_n unto_o the_o eternal_a word_n of_o life_n be_v that_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o death_n and_o darkness_n which_o the_o scripture_n can_v never_o do_v they_o be_v a_o declaration_n and_o testimony_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n but_o not_o the_o heavenly_a thing_n themselves_o and_o as_o such_o we_o carry_v a_o high_a respect_n unto_o they_o we_o accept_v they_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n they_o be_v read_v with_o great_a instruction_n and_o comfort_n i_o esteem_v they_o the_o best_a of_o write_n and_o desire_v nothing_o more_o frequent_o then_o that_o i_o may_v lead_v the_o life_n they_o exhort_v to_o and_o whatever_o sleight_n apprehension_n my_o disingenuous_a adversary_n be_v please_v to_o have_v of_o these_o kind_n of_o acknowledgement_n i_o write_v the_o naked_a truth_n of_o my_o heart_n know_v i_o must_v give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n chap._n iu._n his_o pretence_n of_o our_o equal_v our_o own_o write_n and_o say_n with_o the_o scripture_n without_o any_o flourish_a reflection_n most_o common_o the_o head_n and_o tail_n and_o sometime_o middle_a too_o of_o my_o adversary_n reply_n i_o shall_v lay_v down_o his_o word_n rep._n the_o mean_v i_o use_v for_o confirm_v the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o charge_n be_v two_o first_o their_o pretend_v they_o to_o be_v from_o immediate_a inspiration_n this_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v that_o he_o plead_v for_o it_o but_o after_o such_o a_o rude_a impertinent_a manner_n that_o i_o shall_v but_o injure_v you_o and_o show_v myself_o idle_a to_o transscribe_v and_o animadvert_v upon_o it_o rejoin_v how_o rude_a and_o impertinent_a a_o manner_n i_o plead_v for_o it_o the_o reader_n may_v best_o judge_v by_o peruse_v something_o of_o the_o passage_n for_o inspiration_n the_o scripture_n be_v not_o more_o express_v in_o any_o one_o thing_n 37._o no_o man_n can_v know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n by_o the_o bare_a spirit_n of_o a_o man._n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o seal_a book_n to_o all_o but_o those_o who_o know_v they_o by_o the_o same_o hand_n that_o original_o give_v they_o so_o that_o however_o common_a they_o may_v be_v in_o the_o world_n they_o be_v stranger_n to_o they_o that_o understand_v they_o not_o and_o though_o old_a respect_v the_o time_n when_o they_o be_v reveal_v to_o the_o saint_n yet_o new_a to_o every_o age._n so_o that_o we_o assert_v not_o a_o revelation_n of_o new_a thing_n but_o a_o renew_a revelation_n of_o those_o thing_n god_n make_v former_a age_n witness_n of_o otherwise_o man_n be_v no_o more_o benefit_v by_o they_o and_o to_o be_v benefit_v they_o must_v be_v make_v we_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o make_v they_o the_o holy_a ancient_n in_o short_a no_o man_n can_v understand_v spiritnal_n thing_n but_o the_o spiritual_o discern_v nor_o can_v he_o so_o be_v without_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a this_o be_v scripture_n now_o the_o author_n of_o those_o query_n and_o j._n faldo_n also_o deny_v inspiration_n they_o consequent_o deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v and_o for_o man_n not_o spiritual_a to_o judge_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n much_o 〈◊〉_d to_o write_v of_o they_o and_o bid_v their_o write_n go_v and_o throwdown_o self-will_a and_o exalt_v the_o truth_n be_v vain_a and_o idolatrous_a for_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o consider_v mere_o as_o such_o be_v unable_a much_o less_o write_n found_v on_o self-will_a for_o it_o be_v the_o alone_a privilege_n of_o god_n power_n and_o spirit_n and_o no_o write_v whatever_o distinct_a from_o it_o can_v perform_v that_o great_a and_o mighty_a work_n in_o man._n now_o as_o rude_a and_o impertinent_a as_o this_o answer_n may_v be_v in_o john_n faldo_n eye_n his_o reply_n have_v not_o afford_v i_o light_a enough_o to_o see_v it_o he_o will_v prove_v we_o guilty_a of_o hold_v inspiration_n as_o if_o to_o do_v so_o be_v a_o crime_n from_o a_o passage_n of_o john_n story_n be_v who_o reject_v certain_a query_n exhibit_v against_o the_o quaker_n because_o mere_o ground_v upon_o the_o author_n imagination_n of_o certain_a passage_n in_o scripture_n and_o not_o any_o certain_a knowledge_n or_o experience_n receive_v from_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o reader_n to_o judge_v how_o pertinent_o i_o return_v upon_o my_o adversary_n sure_o i_o be_o that_o self-willed_a query_n can_v never_o throw_v down_o self-will_a and_o to_o urge_v scripture_n not_o experience_v be_v to_o steal_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n from_o our_o neighbour_n inspiration_n be_v in_o request_n after_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o indeed_o be_v unintelligible_a without_o it_o the_o new_a birth_n be_v never_o the_o more_o know_v for_o christ_n say_v to_o necodemus_fw-la though_o thereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o without_o it_o no_o man_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o spirit_n alone_o that_o reveal_v the_o mystery_n of_o regeneration_n therefore_o to_o deny_v inspiration_n or_o revelation_n be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o only_a and_o evangelical_n way_n to_o divine_a knowledge_n erasmus_n himself_o can_v tell_v we_o what_o man_n set_v forth_o by_o man_n device_n may_v be_v perceive_v by_o man_n wit_n 19_o but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n require_v a_o interpreter_n inspire_v with_o the_o like_a spirit_n 2._o and_o without_o the_o inspiration_n of_o it_o 150._o the_o secret_n of_o god_n can_v be_v know_v which_o be_v also_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o four_o article_n exhibit_v against_o the_o lutheran_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o a_o erroneous_a doctrine_n they_o hold_v that_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n neither_o gloss_n nor_o comment_n be_v necessary_a but_o only_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o a_o sheep_n of_o christ_n pasture_n vetablus_fw-la
again_o by_o way_n of_o defence_n of_o his_o severe_a rebuke_n of_o this_o insolent_a and_o scoff_a adversary_n like_o i_o when_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o rage_v he_o thus_o reply_v thy_o foolish_a blasphemy_n have_v compel_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o i_o to_o speak_v that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v to_o thou_o thou_o enemy_n of_o all_o righteousness_n i_o tell_v thou_o plain_o thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o speak_v in_o i_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o christ_n true_a religion_n of_o this_o judgement_n be_v the_o most_o eminent_a martyr_n i_o shall_v conclude_v with_o john_n bradford_n plain_a assertion_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n 298._o we_o do_v believe_v and_o know_v the_o scripture_n as_o christ_n sheep_n not_o because_o the_o church_n say_v they_o be_v the_o scripture_n but_o because_o they_o be_v so_o be_v thereof_o assure_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o write_v and_o speak_v they_o how_o all_o these_o testimony_n can_v be_v true_a and_o yet_o inspiration_n untrue_a i_o shall_v leave_v with_o the_o sober_a reader_n to_o judge_v and_o if_o my_o argument_n be_v still_o irrational_a and_o my_o testimony_n insufficient_a or_o erroneous_a in_o his_o account_n it_o will_v become_v his_o pretence_n to_o divinity_n not_o with_o squib_n and_o rail_a but_o reason_n scripture_n and_o better_a authority_n to_o discover_v it_o the_o second_o way_n he_o take_v to_o prove_v our_o equal_v our_o write_n to_o and_o prefer_v they_o before_o the_o scripture_n be_v our_o pretence_n to_o infallibility_n hear_v what_o he_o say_v rep._n infallibility_n w._n p._n do_v not_o deny_v to_o be_v their_o pretence_n 17._o but_o will_v make_v it_o very_o necessary_a and_o cast_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n again_o and_o again_o and_o again_o too_o as_o dirt_n in_o my_o face_n this_o be_v your_o fallible_a errable_a uncertain_a j._n faldo_n rejoin_v it_o be_v ill_o do_v of_o my_o adversary_n to_o call_v my_o answer_n dirt_n which_o be_v so_o serious_a and_o to_o which_o he_o have_v reply_v little_a else_o but_o dirt_n i_o perceive_v all_o along_o notwithstanding_o the_o vast_a difference_n he_o represent_v we_o to_o be_v at_o as_o to_o a_o worldly_a condition_n this_o priest_n be_v ten_o time_n more_o enrage_v at_o the_o just_a consequence_n i_o draw_v from_o his_o own_o fallible_a doctrine_n than_o he_o think_v a_o quaker_n ought_v to_o be_v displease_v with_o he_o for_o his_o numerous_a and_o scurrilous_a provocation_n but_o if_o it_o be_v dirt_n it_o stick_v fast_o still_o for_o i_o find_v none_o of_o it_o wipe_v off_o and_o how_o dirty_a it_o be_v the_o reader_n may_v judge_v by_o peruse_v it_o he_o that_o do_v not_o infallible_o know_v what_o he_o pretend_v to_o know_v of_o god_n or_o religion_n know_v nothing_o certain_o which_o concern_v either_o 36._o now_o if_o man_n can_v attain_v to_o any_o such_o certainty_n farewell_o all_o religion_n for_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v affirm_v and_o not_o know_v whereof_o that_o he_o shall_v profess_v god_n and_o religion_n yet_o be_v uncertain_a of_o both_o but_o that_o j._n faldo_n shall_v preach_v up_o and_o profess_v himself_o errable_a in_o all_o such_o doctrine_n who_o ought_v to_o believe_v he_o why_o spend_v he_o his_o breath_n at_o a_o venture_n what_o reason_n have_v any_o to_o believe_v he_o against_o we_o who_o be_v uncertain_a of_o what_o he_o say_v against_o we_o by_o his_o own_o principle_n this_o be_v your_o independent_a errable_a fallible_a uncertain_a j._n faldo_n reader_n this_o be_v by_o much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o that_o dirt_n he_o say_v i_o cast_v in_o his_o face_n but_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o great_a ignominy_n no_o man_n can_v well_o bring_v upon_o the_o gospel_n then_o that_o those_o who_o be_v convert_v by_o it_o be_v both_o uncertain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o their_o own_o conversion_n he_o either_o seem_v to_o have_v forget_v or_o never_o to_o have_v understand_v the_o mean_v of_o those_o word_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n that_o their_o heart_n may_v be_v comfort_v 2._o and_o be_v knit_v together_o in_o love_n and_o unto_o all_o riches_n of_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o vnderstandding_n to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n again_o 11._o and_o we_o desire_v that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o do_v show_v the_o same_o diligence_n to_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o hope_n unto_o the_o end_n 22._o let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o true_a heart_n in_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o apostle_n john_n tell_v we_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v the_o witness_n in_o himself_o that_o they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n and_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v they_o a_o understanding_n that_o they_o know_v he_o that_o be_v true_a and_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a even_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o this_o be_v the_o record_n that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o we_o eternal_a life_n and_o this_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n 1_o john_n 5._o 10_o 11_o 12_o 19_o 20._o if_o these_o prove_v not_o certainty_n in_o faith_n hope_n and_o eternal_a life_n there_o be_v no_o truth_n prove_v in_o scripture_n for_o that_o people_n shall_v have_v full_a assurance_n christ_n in_o they_o their_o hope_n and_o life_n and_o witness_v of_o these_o thing_n in_o themselves_o know_v he_o that_o be_v true_a and_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o be_v uncertain_a of_o their_o faith_n hope_n and_o life_n and_o doubtful_a of_o their_o inward_a witness_n and_o the_o evidence_n and_o knowledge_n that_o be_v give_v by_o he_o can_v be_v less_o contradictory_n then_o to_o affirm_v man_n ignorant_a of_o what_o they_o know_v or_o guilty_a of_o what_o they_o be_v innocent_a to_o be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o what_o we_o believe_v be_v no_o error_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o john_n philpot_n and_o bishop_n latimer_n whatever_o use_n be_v make_v of_o it_o now_o to_o discriminate_a a_o quaker_n the_o first_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chiehester_n who_o reflect_v upon_o he_o 577._o as_o conceit_v himself_o better_a learn_v they_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o brethren_n a_o flout_v my_o lordly_a adversary_n have_v more_o than_o once_o bestow_v on_o i_o answer_v i_o take_v upon_o i_o the_o name_n of_o no_o learning_n i_o boast_v of_o no_o knowledge_n papist_n but_o of_o faith_n and_o of_o christ_n and_o that_o i_o be_o bind_v undoubted_o or_o infallible_o to_o know_v as_o i_o be_o sure_a i_o do_v the_o bishop_n reply_n these_o heretic_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v sure_a of_o all_o thing_n they_o stand_v in_o you_o shall_v say_v rather_o with_o humility_n i_o trust_v i_o know_v christ_n then_o that_o i_o be_v sure_a thereof_o which_o be_v so_o like_o j._n faldo_n that_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o bishop_n revive_v proud_o catechise_v &_o reprove_v the_o poor_a quaker_n but_o hear_v john_n philpot_n bold_a and_o smart_a answer_n let_v he_o doubt_v of_o his_o faith_n that_o list_v say_v he_o god_n give_v i_o always_o to_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o sure_a of_o true_a faith_n and_o favour_n in_o christ_n bishop_n latiman_n in_o his_o second_o letter_n direct_v to_o sr._n edward_n bainton_n 475._o a_o favourer_n of_o he_o that_o little_a time_n he_o live_v in_o queen_n mary_n reign_n who_o through_o his_o desire_n to_o preserve_v he_o be_v willing_a to_o allay_v the_o honest_a man_n zeal_n for_o the_o truth_n from_o the_o great_a uncertainty_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n about_o truth_n say_v he_o first_o you_o mislike_v that_o i_o say_v i_o be_o sure_a that_o i_o preach_v the_o truth_n say_v in_o reproof_n the_o same_o that_o god_n know_v certain_a truth_n indeed_o god_n alone_o know_v all_o certain_a truth_n and_o god_n alone_o know_v it_o as_o of_o himself_o and_o none_o know_v certain_a truth_n but_o god_n and_o those_o that_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n as_o say_v st._n paul_n for_o god_n have_v show_v it_o unto_o they_o and_o christ_n himself_o they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n and_o your_o friend_n deny_v not_o but_o that_o certain_a truth_n be_v communicate_v to_o we_o according_a to_o capacity_n but_o as_o to_o my_o presumption_n and_o arrogancy_n either_o i_o be_o certain_a or_o uncertain_a that_o it_o be_v truth_n that_o i_o preach_v if_o it_o be_v truth_n why_o may_v not_o i_o say_v so_o if_o i_o be_v uncertain_a why_o dare_v i_o be_v so_o bold_a to_o preach_v it_o and_o if_o your_o friend_n be_v preacher_n themselves_o after_o their_o sermon_n i_o pray_v you_o ask_v they_o whether_o they_o be_v certain_a and_o sure_o they_o
preach_v you_o the_o truth_n or_o no_o and_o send_v i_o word_n what_o they_o say_v that_o i_o may_v learn_v to_o speak_v after_o they_o if_o they_o say_v they_o be_v sure_a you_o know_v what_o follow_v if_o they_o say_v they_o be_v unsure_a when_o shall_v you_o be_v sure_a that_o have_v so_o doubtful_a and_o unsure_a teacher_n thus_o much_o of_o infallibility_n when_o he_o have_v answer_v this_o we_o may_v give_v he_o some_o more_o mean_v time_n we_o shall_v proceed_v rep._n but_o further_a say_v w._n p._n can_v one_o man_n be_v another_o man_n brother_n and_o not_o the_o elder_a brother_n 19_o this_o have_v do_v your_o work_n or_o all_o hope_n be_v lose_v it_o seem_v the_o scripture_n and_o your_o write_n may_v without_o offience_n call_v one_o another_o brother_n yet_o not_o be_v think_v to_o aspire_v to_o equality_n but_o why_o because_o for_o soothe_v you_o do_v not_o say_v they_o be_v the_o scripture_n elder_a brother_n i_o think_v till_o now_o that_o brethren_n have_v be_v a_o term_n of_o equality_n and_o though_o in_o humane_a birth_n there_o be_v a_o natural_a right_n to_o the_o first-born_a above_o the_o rest_n yet_o not_o in_o the_o production_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o new_a excel_v the_o old_a testament_n in_o glory_n rejoin_v in_o simile_n there_o be_v some_o allowance_n with_o honest_a man_n but_o none_o to_o be_v hope_v for_o from_o j._n faldo_n but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o hard_a for_o he_o to_o bear_v i_o can_v help_v it_o several_a write_n may_v be_v give_v forth_o from_o the_o same_o spirit_n without_o come_v upon_o the_o vy_z if_o we_o must_v needs_o equa●_n some_o of_o our_o write_n to_o the_o scripture_n because_o give_v forth_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n then_o must_v every_o the_o least_o true_a christian_a be_v equal_a to_o the_o great_a apostle_n because_o endue_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o pour_v forth_o of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n we_o have_v prove_v the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o inspiration_n as_o necessary_a as_o divine_a knowledge_n because_o the_o only_a way_n to_o it_o whatever_o therefore_o have_v be_v write_v from_o adam_n day_n to_o this_o or_o shall_v yet_o be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o motion_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o any_o of_o his_o child_n stand_v as_o near_o relate_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o his_o several_a manifestation_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o his_o servant_n write_v the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v brethren_n have_v one_o father_n be_v they_o therefore_o equal_o dignify_v in_o degree_n of_o fellowship_n and_o that_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o my_o former_a simile_n disingenuous_o take_v by_o my_o adversary_n for_o as_o there_o be_v a_o degree_n in_o natural_a so_o in_o spiritual_a birth_n the_o dignity_n of_o the_o first_o lie_v in_o priority_n of_o time_n the_o dignity_n of_o the_o last_o in_o a_o more_o full_a discovery_n of_o immortality_n and_o eternal_a life_n thus_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a exceed_v those_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o there_o be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o ample_a declaration_n there_o must_v be_v the_o pre-eminence_n now_o alas_o what_o can_v we_o boast_v of_o that_o be_v not_o former_o testify_v unto_o we_o exalt_v no_o singular_a spirit_n neither_o walk_v we_o in_o a_o untrodden_a path_n it_o be_v the_o everlasting_a gospel_n we_o bear_v witness_n unto_o and_o to_o the_o revival_n and_o break_v his_o forth_o of_o that_o ancient_a life_n truth_n spirit_n and_o power_n which_o according_a unto_o divers_a dispensation_n have_v make_v people_n true_a child_n of_o god_n what_o do_v you_o esteem_v your_o own_o meaning_n and_o interpretation_n do_v you_o not_o entitle_v they_o to_o a_o very_a near_o relation_n the_o text_n interpret_v we_o never_o intend_v to_o bring_v our_o write_n upon_o the_o vye_n and_o dispute_v with_o it_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o pre-eminence_n but_o our_o write_n further_o declare_v of_o the_o same_o truth_n from_o the_o same_o spirit_n be_v relate_v to_o they_o if_o to_o testify_v and_o exhort_v to_o the_o same_o truth_n the_o scripture_n declare_v of_o and_o that_o in_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o they_o be_v give_v forth_o be_v offensive_o to_o equal_v or_o prefer_v such_o testimony_n we_o be_v indeed_o guilty_a of_o great_a presumption_n but_o if_o it_o be_v scriptural_o true_a that_o as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o such_o as_o so_o lead_v may_v by_o that_o spirit_n further_o be_v draw_v forth_o to_o fresh_a testimony_n to_o any_o ancient_a truth_n or_o truth_n declare_v of_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whether_o by_o way_n of_o prophecy_n information_n exhortation_n reproof_n or_o comfort_n to_o believer_n or_o unbeliever_n as_o must_v not_o be_v deny_v since_o god_n can_v be_v limit_v it_o can_v be_v presumptuous_a or_o arrogant_a to_o affirm_v any_o kindred_n or_o relation_n between_o any_o such_o write_n or_o wriring_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n in_o short_a either_o there_o be_v never_o to_o be_v more_o inspiration_n after_o the_o apostle_n decease_n and_o consequent_o no_o more_o testimony_n nor_o prophecy_n to_o be_v then_o what_o the_o remain_a scripture_n give_v we_o or_o the_o pour_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n belong_v as_o well_o to_o after_o age_n as_o to_o that_o as_o have_v be_v abundant_o prove_v and_o therefore_o fresh_a testimony_n and_o prophecy_n by_o way_n of_o further_a open_n or_o press_v the_o ancient_a truth_n record_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n may_v in_o after_o age_n be_v give_v forth_o unless_o god_n and_o his_o spirit_n shall_v be_v limit_v and_o many_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n remain_v unfulfil_v if_o any_o shall_v object_v it_o be_v add_v according_a to_o revel_v 22._o 18._o i_o will_v have_v they_o know_v that_o the_o addition_n intend_v be_v not_o of_o other_o write_n but_o other_o doctrine_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o with_o a_o very_a notable_a passage_n deliver_v in_o a_o book_n entitle_v a_o examen_fw-la of_o the_o late_a assembly_n of_o divine_n confession_n of_o faith_n present_v to_o the_o parliament_n anno_fw-la 165●_n pag._n 8_o 10._o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v prophet_n in_o all_o age_n &_o especial_o when_o he_o be_v about_o to_o bring_v extraordinary_a judgement_n upon_o the_o world_n in_o general_n and_o upon_o the_o church_n be_v special_a and_o that_o the_o last_o time_n shall_v abound_v most_o of_o all_o with_o the_o prophetical_a spirit_n so_o that_o these_o extraordinary_a way_n of_o god_n reveal_v himself_o neither_o be_v cease_v nor_o shall_v determine_v in_o the_o militant_a church_n three_o whereas_o you_o say_v in_o the_o six_o section_n that_o nothing_o at_o any_o time_n be_v to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n whether_o by_o new_a revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o tradition_n of_o man_n we_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o warrant_v you_o have_v thus_o to_o determine_v if_o you_o say_v that_o in_o revelat._n 22._o 18._o it_o be_v write_v that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v add_v unto_o these_o thing_n god_n shall_v add_v unto_o he_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n we_o answer_v that_o so_o much_o in_o effect_n be_v forbid_v long_o before_o as_o prov._n 30._o 6._o add_v thou_o not_o unto_o his_o word_n lest_o he_o reprove_v thou_o and_o thou_o be_v find_v a_o liar_n yet_o many_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v be_v add_v since_o the_o write_a word_n of_o those_o time_n yea_o the_o same_o inhibition_n be_v give_v by_o moses_n deut._n 4._o 2._o &_o 12._o 32._o you_o shall_v not_o add_v to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o neither_o shall_v you_o diminish_v aught_o from_o it_o therefore_o this_o addition_n thus_o probibit_v must_v necessary_o be_v understand_v of_o any_o new_a doctrine_n in_o substance_n differ_v from_o the_o old_a but_o even_o that_o of_o moses_n but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o vindication_n of_o the_o same_o when_o misunderstand_a or_o a_o more_o full_a and_o free_a publication_n of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o inspire_a man_n of_o the_o new_a rep._n my_o adversary_n tell_v i_o a_o blind_a story_n a_o prefer_v our_o write_n above_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v from_o god_n essential_o in_o we_o 19_o but_o this_o say_v he_o p._n have_v not_o one_o word_n to_o rejoin_v i_o have_v little_a reason_n for_o it_o he_o confess_v pag._n 43._o of_o his_o former_a discourse_n that_o he_o expect_v not_o to_o find_v any_o such_o word_n as_o essential_o in_o our_o author_n do_v he_o think_v i_o be_v to_o play_v the_o
rule_n and_o controversy_n on_o foot_n be_v manifest_o employ_v especial_o when_o i_o make_v no_o advantage_n to_o myself_o by_o it_o but_o every_o such_o little_a thing_n must_v be_v call_v by_o a_o hard_a name_n or_o john_n faldo_n will_v have_v little_a to_o write_v and_o but_o a_o few_o to_o believe_v his_o book_n but_o to_o the_o point_n avoid_v many_o occasion_n for_o severe_a reflection_n perhaps_o he_o grant_v we_o what_o we_o can_v desire_v for_o upon_o my_o assert_v that_o what_o be_v and_o be_v more_o general_a than_o the_o scripture_n be_v most_o proper_o the_o general_n rule_n he_o reply_v rep._n i_o never_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v a_o general_a rule_n nor_o be_v it_o that_o 26._o i_o charge_v the_o quaker_n for_o deny_v but_o i_o charge_v they_o with_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v any_o rule_n at_o all_o of_o faith_n and_o life_n he_o mistake_v the_o question_n and_o yield_v my_o charge_n to_o be_v their_o principle_n and_o plead_v for_o it_o p._n 54._o rejoin_v if_o that_o be_v not_o the_o question_n how_o have_v i_o grant_v the_o question_n do_v i_o plead_v for_o his_o charge_n because_o i_o plead_v against_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o general_n rule_n p._n 54._o which_o he_o say_v be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o charge_n and_o what_o himself_o undertake_v not_o to_o contradict_v but_o sure_o i_o be_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o general_n rule_n as_o he_o imply_v and_o thereby_o cut_v his_o own_o throat_n and_o grant_v to_o the_o quaker_n the_o question_n as_o large_o as_o needs_o to_o be_v they_o be_v not_o the_o rule_n by_o way_n of_o excellency_n or_o the_o rule_n by_o which_o god_n people_n in_o all_o age_n have_v walk_v for_o that_o be_v and_o be_v general_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n upon_o his_o own_o concession_n be_v but_o a_o particular_a rule_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v the_o great_a evangelical_n rule_n as_o be_v many_o other_o instrument_n that_o have_v be_v make_v use_n of_o upon_o several_a occasion_n he_o may_v have_v learn_v thus_o much_o in_o p._n 53._o of_o my_o answer_n where_o i_o say_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n to_o contain_v many_o holy_a rule_n for_o godliness_n i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o how_o that_o can_v be_v and_o yet_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n in_o any_o sense_n but_o we_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n who_o can_v neither_o give_v nor_o govern_v faith_n nor_o judge_n of_o controversy_n as_o the_o many_o different_a persuasion_n in_o the_o world_n full_o prove_v for_o then_o all_o that_o have_v the_o scripture_n will_v be_v of_o one_o persuasion_n as_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a those_o be_v who_o have_v and_o walk_v by_o the_o one_o spirit_n wherefore_o since_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o testify_v to_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o great_a judge_n rule_n and_o leader_n especial_o under_o the_o new_a covenant_n where_o the_o law_n be_v not_o write_v on_o table_n of_o stone_n much_o less_o paper_n but_o of_o flesh_n to_o wit_n the_o heart_n of_o the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o man_n the_o spirit_n and_o not_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n in_o short_a the_o scripture_n can_v try_v a_o present_a motion_n or_o prophecy_n bad_a spirit_n be_v whole_o hide_v from_o it_o for_o instance_n paul_n reprove_v not_o the_o spirit_n that_o cry_v these_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n that_o show_v unto_o we_o the_o way_n of_o eternal_a life_n from_o the_o scripture_n neither_o do_v peter_n deceitful_a ananias_n but_o from_o the_o heavenly_a instinct_n and_o savour_n relish_v or_o discern_v they_o receive_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n within_o they_o it_o be_v in_o a_o case_n of_o such_o difficulty_n that_o some_o in_o these_o late_a time_n have_v write_v that_o the_o scripture_n give_v no_o general_a stand_a rule_n for_o all_o particular_a case_n in_o flee_v or_o stand_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o frame_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o retire_v at_o that_o season_n which_o whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o false_a that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v so_o influence_n they_o two_o thing_n be_v undeniable_a first_o that_o it_o be_v the_o frame_n of_o their_o spirit_n witness_v their_o practice_n second_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o square_v themselves_o by_o on_o that_o occasion_n and_o what_o else_o do_v professor_n mean_v when_o they_o advise_v people_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n in_o this_o or_o the_o other_o case_n why_o do_v they_o not_o go_v seek_v the_o scripture_n rather_o do_v not_o such_o a_o practice_n manifest_o detect_v the_o scripture_n of_o insufficiency_n and_o evident_o prove_v their_o acknowledgement_n both_o of_o revelation_n and_o their_o recourse_n to_o a_o more_o live_v spiritual_n immediate_a and_o sufficient_a rule_n why_o else_o do_v they_o seek_v god_n mind_n say_v they_o by_o prayer_n not_o formal_a but_o by_o the_o spirit_n but_o this_o be_v become_v despise_a heresy_n with_o j._n faldo_n for_o faith_n in_o his_o sense_n rise_v no_o high_a than_o so_o many_o article_n lay_v down_o suppose_v true_o according_a to_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o devil_n can_v believe_v as_o well_o as_o he_o this_o faith_n i_o call_v mere_o verbal_a and_o historical_a of_o which_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v a_o rule_n but_o not_o of_o save_v faith_n for_o of_o that_o faith_n only_o the_o spirit_n can_v be_v the_o rule_n and_o why_o because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n alone_o reveal_v he_o to_o the_o soul_n who_o be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n and_o work_v faith_n in_o the_o soul_n upon_o that_o object_n and_o as_o this_o only_o beget_v faith_n so_o it_o increase_v enlivens_fw-la rule_n govern_v and_o strengthen_v faith_n unto_o dominion_n this_o alone_a unfold_v those_o mystery_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n 31._o wherefore_o answer_v the_o eunuch_n unto_o philip_n when_o he_o query_v understand_v thou_o what_o thou_o read_v how_o shall_v i_o unless_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v a_o guide_n as_o say_v our_o old_a english_a translation_n which_o imply_v that_o the_o thing_n declare_v of_o by_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v from_o the_o scripture_n but_o a_o more_o live_v spiritual_a and_o certain_a guide_n wherefore_o we_o affirm_v that_o repentance_n faith_n sanctification_n justification_n redemption_n regeneration_n etc._n etc._n be_v all_o a_o mystery_n never_o to_o be_v disclose_v but_o by_o the_o revelation_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o man_n the_o scripture_n can_v only_o testfie_v to_o such_o thing_n that_o they_o be_v but_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n alone_o that_o work_v they_o and_o illuminate_v guide_n govern_v and_o rule_v the_o soul_n in_o and_o about_o such_o thing_n it_o be_v true_a all_o the_o spirit_n lead_v to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n it_o overturn_v they_o not_o for_o they_o declare_v of_o most_o of_o these_o operation_n yet_o because_o we_o believe_v know_v and_o witness_v they_o from_o the_o conviction_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n before_o we_o can_v possible_o understand_v they_o in_o scripture_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v but_o a_o declaration_n and_o not_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o only_o best_a way_n to_o determine_v any_o controversy_n on_o foot_n about_o repentance_n faith_n sanctification_n justification_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o judgement_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o work_v they_o for_o how_o can_v the_o scripture_n that_o have_v so_o many_o meaning_n put_v upon_o it_o determine_v which_o of_o those_o meaning_n be_v the_o true_a let_v they_o show_v i_o that_o scripture_n that_o plain_o and_o uninterpretated_o tell_v i_o such_o a_o proposition_n be_v true_a and_o such_o a_o one_o be_v false_a that_o consist_v only_o of_o their_o additional_a meaning_n such_o a_o new_a nickname_v people_n right_a and_o such_o wrong_n and_o they_o do_v their_o business_n if_o they_o can_v as_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v they_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o something_o else_o to_o rule_v &_o determine_v and_o what_o can_v that_o be_v beside_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n which_o work_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o rule_v the_o holy_a life_n of_o those_o ancient_n who_o give_v forth_o this_o declaration_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n can_v any_o man_n t●ll_o another_o mind_n better_o than_o himself_o or_o resolve_v any_o doubt_n or_o clear_v up_o any_o misunderstand_a concern_v what_o be_v deliver_v better_o than_o he_o that_o speak_v it_o to_o understand_v those_o holy_a man_n mind_n and_o disprove_v they_o that_o mistake_v it_o
there_o be_v a_o unavoidable_a necessity_n of_o come_v to_o that_o spirit_n which_o make_v it_o they_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v according_a to_o scripture_n but_o the_o question_n be_v what_o be_v true_a doctrine_n scripture_n be_v a_o strong_a testimony_n but_o what_o enlighten_v the_o mind_n resolve_v doubt_n and_o work_v faith_n and_o inform_v guide_n and_o help_v the_o soul_n through_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o conversion_n and_o without_o which_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n itself_o be_v true_o a_o unintelligible_a and_o a_o incredible_a thing_n this_o must_v be_v nothing_o less_o than_o the_o spirit_n itself_o in_o short_a the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n but_o declaration_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n that_o only_o must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o give_v and_o rule_v the_o faith_n of_o those_o that_o give_v forth_o scripture_n and_o because_o none_o can_v give_v or_o work_v faith_n now_o but_o what_o do_v give_v and_o work_v faith_n then_o it_o be_v not_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o which_o be_v before_o the_o scripture_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o author_n rule_n and_o finisher_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o if_o our_o faith_n in_o this_o age_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o old_n that_o give_v forth_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v no_o more_o our_o rule_n now_o then_o they_o be_v they_o then_o who_o have_v a_o rule_n and_o a_o faith_n before_o they_o but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o declaration_n of_o what_o they_o believe_v know_v and_o witness_v so_o it_o be_v a_o declaration_n of_o what_o we_o now_o believe_v and_o desire_v to_o know_v and_o witness_v john_n epistle_n be_v not_o write_v to_o be_v the_o saint_n rule_v for_o he_o direct_v they_o to_o the_o anoint_v yet_o their_o faith_n and_o life_n of_o which_o the_o anoint_v be_v the_o rule_n be_v according_a to_o john_n epistle_n again_o the_o declaration_n in_o time_n be_v after_o the_o faith_n declare_v of_o but_o where_o there_o be_v faith_n there_o be_v a_o rule_n consequent_o that_o declaration_n which_o be_v after_o that_o faith_n and_o rule_n be_v not_o that_o rule_n so_o that_o the_o most_o that_o can_v be_v say_v against_o we_o be_v this_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v a_o declaration_n of_o your_o faith_n till_o you_o come_v to_o such_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v thereby_o express_v as_o they_o have_v who_o write_v they_o and_o a_o great_a truth_n it_o be_v but_o then_o say_v we_o the_o spirit_n must_v work_v that_o faith_n before_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v account_v a_o declaration_n of_o our_o faith_n or_o we_o interest_v in_o they_o and_o because_o that_o faith_n have_v a_o rule_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o have_v a_o be_v it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o declaration_n of_o that_o faith_n can_v be_v either_o the_o author_n or_o rule_n of_o it_o here_o lie_v the_o mistake_n of_o my_o adversary_n and_o many_o more_o that_o because_o what_o a_o man_n do_v be_v according_a or_o agreeable_a to_o a_o thing_n therefore_o that_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v to_o proceed_v for_o this_o reason_n it_o be_v a_o constraint_n lie_v upon_o we_o from_o god_n to_o direct_v and_o exhort_v all_o people_n diligent_o to_o mind_v that_o measure_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o to_o profit_n with_o as_o that_o alone_a by_o which_o man_n come_v to_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o will_n and_o to_o do_v the_o good_a and_o acceptable_a thing_n in_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o by_o which_o his_o poor_a labour_a mind_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o incertainty_n numerous_a interpretation_n &_o vain_a jangle_n man_n have_v pester_v the_o world_n withal_o who_o have_v darken_a counsel_n and_o bewilder_v many_o in_o their_o conscientious_a enquiery_n after_o god_n draw_v out_o their_o mind_n from_o the_o season_n principle_n of_o life_n instead_o of_o bring_v they_o near_o to_o the_o lord_n for_o which_o great_a and_o heavy_a plague_n hang_v over_o the_o head_n of_o this_o generation_n who_o make_v war_n against_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o letter_n instead_o of_o confirm_v its_o appearance_n from_o the_o letter_n and_o under_o pretence_n of_o call_v the_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n divert_v people_n from_o wait_v for_o the_o word_n nigh_o unto_o themselves_o which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n and_o give_v life_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o obey_v it_o decry_v we_o as_o seducer_n and_o deride_v we_o as_o euthusiastick_a canter_n because_o we_o prefer_v and_o turn_v all_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n within_o a_o outside_n carnal_a envious_a and_o hypocrical_a generation_n as_o it_o be_v i_o will_v conclude_v this_o head_n with_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o some_o certain_a author_n that_o be_v never_o profess_v nor_o repute_v quaker_n wherefore_o they_o who_o be_v true_a believer_n say_v the_o first_o and_o have_v receive_v christ_n spirit_n 10._o their_o judgement_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v in_o the_o trial_n of_o spirit_n before_o a_o whole_a council_n of_o clergyman_n and_o they_o only_a who_o can_v try_v spirit_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o doctrine_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n can_v in_o measure_n discern_v all_o spirit_n in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o dwell_v in_o all_o true_a christian_n can_v deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o trial_n of_o spirit_n with_o abundance_n more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o other_o bring_v in_o two_o objection_n frequent_o make_v against_o we_o and_o by_o he_o pertinent_o answer_v for_o we_o object_n 1._o it_o be_v say_v isa_n 8._o 20._o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n 12._o if_o any_o man_n speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o he_o answ_n truth_n there_o be_v the_o law_n and_o testimony_n in_o the_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o letter_n the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n there_o it_o be_v write_v and_o there_o it_o testify_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o if_o any_o man_n speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o rule_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n or_o morning_n rise_v in_o he_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n yet_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man._n object_n 2._o it_o be_v say_v gal._n 6._o 16._o that_o whoso_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n peace_n upon_o he_o answ_n true_a but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o letter_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n even_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n read_v the_o word_n before_o and_o you_o shall_v see_v it_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o any_o value_n but_o the_o new_a creature_n and_o whosoever_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n peace_n shall_v be_v upon_o he_o etc._n etc._n progress_n and_o true_o my_o brethren_n it_o be_v my_o earnest_a desire_n to_o see_v soul_n to_o live_v more_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o less_o in_o the_o letter_n and_o then_o they_o will_v see_v that_o we_o judge_v of_o the_o letter_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o of_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o letter_n which_o occasion_n so_o much_o ignorance_n among_o we_o and_o those_o who_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v our_o teacher_n be_v chief_a in_o this_o trespass_n observe_v this_o j._n faldo_n again_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o be_v god_n be_v the_o alone_a rule_n of_o a_o spiritual_a christian_a etc._n etc._n further_n declare_v that_o some_o set_n the_o scripture_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o make_v they_o a_o idol_n ibid._n p._n 248._o let_v he_o either_o discard_v these_o man_n from_o be_v christian_n that_o be_v repute_v great_a and_o refine_a professor_n before_o the_o break_v forth_o of_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n or_o leave_v off_o censure_v this_o part_n of_o our_o doctrine_n as_o no_o part_n of_o christianity_n nor_o have_v we_o any_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v intend_v for_o the_o rule_n at_o first_o since_o they_o be_v not_o give_v forth_o all_o at_o one_o time_n and_o yet_o every_o age_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o a_o rule_n but_o on_o divers_a occasion_n as_o miscarriage_n in_o the_o church_n threaten_v of_o judgement_n prophecy_n history_n and_o comfort_n under_o affliction_n etc._n etc._n require_v nor_o do_v they_o carry_v the_o least_o method_n or_o designment_n of_o the_o great_a rule_n with_o they_o here_o they_o be_v proper_a there_o figurative_a in_o one_o thing_n literal_a in_o another_o allegorical_a without_o all_o definition_n of_o term_n frame_v of_o article_n such_o plainness_n and_o
coherence_n in_o matter_n and_o intelligibleness_n of_o language_n to_o all_o nation_n which_o may_v render_v they_o such_o a_o rule_n beside_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o much_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v lose_v from_o luke_n '_o s_z word_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o history_n where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v but_o one_o of_o the_o many_o who_o do_v set_v forth_o a_o declaration_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o sure_o believe_v among_o they_o even_o say_v he_o as_o they_o deliver_v they_o unto_o we_o which_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v eye-witness_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n for_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v when_o luke_n write_v his_o narrative_n that_o john_n history_n be_v not_o in_o be_v and_o some_o will_v have_v it_o that_o luke_n write_v before_o mark_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o no_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o mark_v and_o matthew_n can_v not_o make_v up_o those_o many_o that_o take_v that_o work_n in_o hand_n neither_o can_v we_o think_v he_o shall_v call_v matthew_n and_o mark_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v with_o the_o athenian_n a_o multitude_n for_o a_o certain_a learned_a man_n will_v have_v it_o that_o no_o better_a greek_a be_v speak_v then_o that_o wherein_o luke_n write_v his_o history_n that_o those_o narrative_n be_v not_o apocryphal_a but_o at_o least_o of_o equal_a authority_n with_o his_o dedicate_a to_o theophilus_n his_o own_o word_n tell_v we_o for_o those_o that_o writ_n be_v such_o as_o relate_v what_o they_o receive_v from_o eye-witness_n and_o the_o first_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n beside_o which_o there_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n age_n and_o the_o two_o follow_a century_n several_a write_n repute_v genuine_a which_o either_o die_v out_o of_o the_o world_n through_o that_o neglect_v bring_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o advantage_n some_o account_v heretic_n may_v make_v of_o they_o in_o defence_n of_o their_o opinion_n or_o stifle_v by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v more_o express_o opposite_a to_o her_o grow_a superstition_n and_o grandeur_n and_o for_o such_o write_n as_o still_o remain_v among_o we_o methinks_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v unknown_a to_o a_o man_n of_o j._n faldo_n pretence_n to_o learning_n how_o much_o the_o authority_n of_o several_a of_o they_o have_v be_v question_v by_o some_o and_o explode_v by_o other_o though_o never_o by_o any_o of_o we_o particular_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o epistle_n of_o james_n second_o and_o three_o of_o john_n second_o of_o peter_n judas_n the_o revelation_n and_o with_o some_o matthew_n history_n itself_o have_v not_o escape_v the_o like_a censure_n of_o which_o reader_n thou_o have_v a_o account_n at_o large_a in_o that_o notable_a frenchman_n dallaeus_n de_fw-fr usa_fw-la patrum_fw-la and_o a_o late_a discourse_n main_o direct_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n 27._o entitle_v christoph_n christophori_n sandy_n nucleas_n historiae_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la i_o will_v not_o any_o from_o hence_o shall_v repute_v i_o so_o impious_a as_o to_o endeavour_v to_o weaken_v the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o beget_v any_o the_o least_o doubt_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereby_o declare_v only_o upon_o our_o adversary_n principle_n which_o so_o strong_o oppugn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o revelation_n or_o inspiration_n i_o must_v take_v leave_n to_o conclude_v in_o his_o name_n and_o upon_o his_o principle_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v imperfect_a and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n be_v lose_v and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o those_o great_a thing_n relate_v in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o remain_v than_o any_o legend_n at_o rome_n for_o exclude_v revelation_n and_o what_o ground_n have_v he_o for_o his_o faith_n beside_o tradition_n and_o what_o evidence_n can_v he_o give_v we_o upon_o his_o principle_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o former_a and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o latter_a these_o council_n and_o synod_n who_o collect_v and_o canonize_v they_o he_o accept_v for_o one_o part_n and_o reject_v for_o the_o other_o again_o he_o trust_v their_o judgement_n in_o pick_v and_o choose_v and_o yet_o reject_v their_o interpretation_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o difficult_a to_o relish_v genuine_a from_o spurious_a scripture_n as_o when_o right_o discern_v they_o to_o be_v such_o to_o understand_v they_o which_o be_v a_o absolute_a contradiction_n for_o how_o shall_v they_o know_v true_a from_o false_a and_o not_o understand_v the_o true_a that_o council_n which_o make_v the_o write_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n canonical_a leave_v out_o the_o revelation_n as_o apocryphal_a yet_o i_o hope_v j._n faldo_n accept_v that_o as_o hearty_o and_o unquestionable_o as_o the_o rest_n christ_n and_o that_o council_n which_o take_v in_o the_o revelation_n and_o make_v it_o first_o canonical_a bring_v in_o with_o it_o the_o book_n of_o tobi_n judith_n etc._n etc._n which_o j._n faldo_n i_o suppose_v with_o all_o his_o brethren_n reject_v as_o apocryphal_a thus_o be_v mere_a man_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o council_n as_o he_o otherwise_o reject_v his_o rule_n for_o believe_v the_o scripture_n that_o remain_v to_o be_v canonical_a if_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o say_v the_o first_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o his_o canon_n which_o be_v too_o short_a and_o the_o other_o which_o be_v superfluous_a as_o by_o his_o account_n my_o next_o question_n be_v what_o be_v his_o rule_n for_o believe_v those_o council_n i_o be_o sure_a he_o must_v have_v be_v without_o all_o other_o than_o a_o willingness_n to_o believe_v so_o because_o they_o say_v so_o which_o how_o like_o this_o be_v to_o his_o papist_n unto_o who_o he_o will_v resemble_v we_o let_v all_o sober_a protestant_n consider_v i_o can_v see_v how_o he_o be_v able_a to_o oppugn_v any_o thing_n they_o say_v upon_o tradition_n who_o mount_v no_o high_o for_o his_o assurance_n then_o tradition_n and_o such_o too_o as_o rest_n most_o within_o their_o hand_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v we_o that_o to_o know_v scripture_n to_o have_v be_v give_v forth_o upon_o live_n inspiration_n man_n must_v have_v recourse_n to_o inspiration_n than_o not_o so_o much_o council_n and_o synod_n as_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a which_o give_v certain_a understanding_n be_v our_o rule_n in_o the_o case_n as_o well_o say_v the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 1._o §_o 4._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o which_o it_o aught_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o obey_v depend_v not_o on_o the_o testimony_n of_o any_o man_n or_o church_n but_o only_o upon_o god_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o the_o author_n thereof_o and_o since_o j._n faldo_n himself_o confess_v the_o spirit_n necessary_a to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o imply_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o give_v that_o understanding_n of_o itself_o the_o spirit_n must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o understanding_n the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v before_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n concern_v the_o divine_a authority_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o light_n of_o the_o interpreter_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n interpret_v be_v the_o rule_n both_o of_o faith_n and_o practice_n which_o be_v undeniable_o evident_a from_o the_o reconcile_n of_o seem_a contradiction_n if_o the_o mere_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v no_o man_n can_v ever_o make_v they_o meet_v in_o the_o same_o truth_n the_o many_o different_a persuasion_n at_o this_o day_n about_o religion_n prove_v this_o who_o respective_a author_n and_o abettor_n think_v it_o no_o mean_a advantage_n to_o their_o cause_n that_o they_o hold_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v their_o rule_n but_o such_o as_o come_v unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n know_v and_o believe_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o jesus_n david_n '_o s_o key_n that_o open_v and_o none_o shut_v be_v give_v unto_o they_o and_o the_o secret_n of_o their_o god_n remain_v with_o they_o this_o reconcile_v those_o seem_a contradiction_n and_o lead_v through_o the_o great_a and_o deep_a truth_n mention_v in_o scripture_n without_o the_o least_o doubt_n or_o stumble_v this_o be_v the_o superexcellent_a benefit_n of_o the_o new-covenant_n administration_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n the_o instructor_n leader_n and_o comforter_n of_o all_o god_n child_n and_o for_o a_o further_a account_n of_o which_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o my_o book_n entitle_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n vindicated_n from_o pag._n 16._o to_o pag._n 47._o and_o reason_n against_o rail_a from_o pag._n 24._o to_o pag._n 46._o to_o prove_v his_o former_a charge_n he_o produce_v this_o passage_n out_o of_o james_n naylor_n
for_o they_o to_o have_v come_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o escape_v that_o wicked_a murder_n and_o the_o deplorable_a consequence_n of_o it_o have_v not_o be_v to_o have_v wait_v upon_o god_n for_o the_o conviction_n discovery_n and_o guidance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n since_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o utmost_a wit_n of_o man_n with_o the_o exactness_n of_o the_o mere_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n can_v never_o give_v the_o certain_a discern_v knowledge_n and_o savour_n of_o he_o unto_o that_o generation_n who_o very_a word_n themselves_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n it_o be_v by_o a_o divine_a touch_n sense_n and_o knowledge_n give_v from_o above_o that_o he_o be_v true_o discern_v own_a and_o follow_v of_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o cleave_v to_o he_o therefore_o say_v christ_n no_o man_n come_v to_o i_o but_o who_o my_o father_n draw_v where_o be_v that_o draw_v but_o within_o again_o simon_n peter_n flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v what_o who_o i_o be_o but_o my_o father_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n so_o that_o at_o last_o man_n must_v come_v to_o this_o spiritual_a sense_n in_o themselves_o to_o understand_v and_o apply_v the_o very_a command_n of_o scripture_n otherwise_o not_o justice_n but_o detestable_a murder_n may_v under_o the_o name_n of_o it_o be_v confident_o perpetrate_v wherefore_o we_o exhort_v all_o to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o god_n spirit_n that_o illuminate_v certain_o and_o give_v to_o act_v unblamable_o by_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v only_o understand_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v and_o people_n bring_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o that_o life_n of_o righteousness_n they_o plentiful_o declare_v of_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o this_o inward_a discern_v there_o have_v be_v no_o ground_n for_o the_o abolishment_n of_o the_o whole_a jewish_a service_n which_o follow_v some_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o be_v the_o great_a rule_n and_o judge_n now_o which_o god_n promise_v more_o particular_o to_o shed_v abroad_o in_o the_o latter_a day_n and_o be_v the_o great_a inseparable_a privilege_n from_o the_o new_a and_o everlasting_a covenant_n but_o to_o conclude_v why_o shall_v it_o seem_v so_o heterodox_n in_o j._n faldo_n judgement_n since_o if_o man_n believe_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o practise_v it_o by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o power_n of_o the_o same_o how_o else_o can_v paul_n have_v decry_v jewish_a ceremony_n or_o we_o know_v what_o to_o take_v and_o what_o to_o leave_v or_o why_o do_v we_o omit_v any_o command_n therein_o mention_v they_o cicumcised_a therefore_o must_v i_o circumcise_v they_o baptise_a must_v i_o therefore_o baptise_v with_o forty_o more_o particular_a case_n wherein_o nothing_o can_v secure_v any_o from_o the_o imitation_n of_o they_o set_v conviction_n or_o spiritual_a discern_v aside_o i_o will_v offer_v two_o or_o three_o testimony_n from_o approve_a man_n in_o our_o defence_n william_n tindal_n that_o ancient_a faithful_a protestant_a martyr_n who_o j._n fox_n 80._o that_o write_v the_o book_n of_o martyr_n call_v the_o english_a apostle_n speak_v thus_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o understand_v in_o the_o scripture_n more_o than_o a_o turk_n for_o whosoever_o or_o any_o that_o have_v not_o the_o law_n of_o god_n write_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o fulfil_v it_o again_o without_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o understand_v they_o john_n jewel_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n in_o his_o excellent_a book_n against_o the_o papist_n write_v above_o one_o hundred_o year_n ago_o 534._o say_v thus_o to_o our_o purpose_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v bind_v neither_o to_o sharpness_n of_o wit_n nor_o to_o abundance_n of_o learning_n oftentimes_o the_o unlearned_a see_v that_o thing_n that_o the_o learned_a can_v see_v christ_n say_v i_o thank_v thou_o o_o father_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o the_o politic_a and_o have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o the_o little_a one_o therefore_o epiphanius_n say_v only_o to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o clear_a again_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o able_a to_o understand_v the_o holy_a will_n of_o god_n without_o special_a revelation_n therefore_o christ_n give_v thanks_o unto_o his_o father_n and_o likewise_o open_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o disciple_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n without_o this_o special_a help_n and_o prompt_v of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v unto_o the_o reader_n be_v he_o never_o so_o wise_a or_o well_o learned_a as_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o seal_a book_n now_o unless_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v what_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v how_o to_o do_v then_o only_o be_v they_o to_o do_v they_o where_o they_o be_v reveal_v or_o discover_v to_o they_o which_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n only_o according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n the_o testimony_n and_o discovery_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v requisite_a to_o our_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o imply_v and_o comprehend_v a_o discriminate_a knowledge_n or_o certain_a discern_v of_o what_o we_o shall_v practice_v from_o what_o be_v not_o obliege_v upon_o we_o to_o practice_v and_o consequent_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o run_v headlong_o without_o such_o knowledge_n t._n collier_n a_o ancient_n and_o eminent_a man_n among_o the_o western-separatist_n of_o our_o nation_n 247._o write_v thus_o for_o i_o to_o speak_v of_o god_n because_o another_o speak_v of_o he_o and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o talk_v much_o of_o god_n as_o i_o read_v of_o he_o in_o scripture_n not_o be_v make_v one_o in_o the_o same_o truth_n i_o see_v and_o speak_v but_o what_o another_o have_v speak_v and_o so_o may_v speak_v true_o sometime_o of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v by_o hear-say_n another_o man_n truth_n but_o not_o my_o so_o i_o doubt_v many_o a_o soul_n boast_v in_o another_o man_n light_n again_o i_o see_v that_o external_a act_n according_a to_o a_o rule_n without_o be_v nothing_o if_o not_o flow_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o life_n and_o love_n within_o which_o be_v more_o than_o e._n b._n say_v of_o who_o j._n faldo_n with_o unworthy_a reflection_n and_o base_a wrest_n have_v say_v so_o much_o thus_o much_o of_o sober_a rejoynder_n and_o much_o more_o than_o my_o adversary_n scurrilous_a reply_n deserve_v but_o the_o concernment_n i_o have_v for_o the_o information_n of_o other_o draw_v this_o from_o i_o i_o shall_v pass_v by_o his_o rant_a strain_n against_o we_o at_o the_o top_n of_o his_o 36th_o page_n desire_v to_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o business_n and_o where_o i_o may_v without_o break_v his_o matter_n avoid_v trouble_v the_o world_n with_o a_o transcript_n of_o they_o i_o be_o very_o careful_a to_o do_v it_o but_o this_o next_o particular_a as_o many_o more_o be_v little_o else_o and_o since_o he_o suggest_v thereby_o a_o untruth_n with_o great_a confidence_n against_o i_o i_o shall_v wrong_v both_o the_o truth_n and_o myself_o in_o omit_v it_o he_o charge_v we_o with_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n to_o know_v god_n christ_n or_o ourselves_o for_o which_o he_o quote_v w._n smith_n primer_z pag._n 2._o because_o he_o there_o tell_v the_o questioner_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o which_o j._n faldo_n answer_v that_o though_o christ_n say_v no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o come_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n thereby_o make_v as_o i_o observe_v in_o my_o return_n to_o he_o a_o difference_n between_o come_v to_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n and_o to_o god_n by_o christ_n though_o no_o other_o name_n be_v give_v under_o heaven_n than_o the_o name_n of_o je●us_n christ_n etc._n etc._n that_o we_o never_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n in_o god_n hand_n to_o convince_v instruct_v or_o confirm_v nor_o can_v this_o be_v w._n smith_n mean_v since_o he_o will_v thereby_o have_v cut_v off_o all_o benefit_n from_o accrue_v to_o people_n by_o his_o book_n and_o also_o that_o ministry_n he_o have_v receive_v of_o god_n in_o short_a from_o our_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o other_o way_n to_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n he_o conclude_v that_o we_o exclude_v the_o scripture_n and_o consequent_o our_o own_o book_n and_o ministry_n with_o they_o from_o be_v any_o way_n instrumental_a of_o good_a however_o if_o i_o err_v it_o be_v in_o good_a company_n and_o that_o j._n f._n must_v acknowledge_v for_o worthy_a w._n tindal_n p._n 80._o of_o his_o work_n and_o h._n bullenger_n a_o learned_a and_o famous_a reformer_n in_o switzerland_n
to_o enable_v people_n to_o understand_v the_o romish_a translation_n for_o we_o never_o yet_o hear_v of_o so_o much_o as_o any_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v original_o write_v in_o that_o tongue_n it_o be_v strange_a to_o i_o he_o shall_v so_o much_o despise_v the_o people_n who_o language_n he_o so_o much_o extol_v and_o count_v the_o one_o serviceable_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n whilst_o with_o more_o reason_n he_o repute_v the_o other_o such_o gross_a idolater_n luther_n jerk_n the_o papist_n for_o their_o lay_v that_o stress_n j._n f._n do_v upon_o humane_a learning_n w._n tindal_n reject_v it_o w._n doll_n and_o t._n collier_n write_v express_o and_o unanswerable_o against_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o or_o that_o it_o can_v give_v man_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o short_a common_a experience_n and_o the_o christian-spirit_n and_o conversation_n of_o thousand_o that_o understand_v nor_o one_o sentence_n of_o hebrew_n greek_a or_o latin_a make_v good_a the_o assertion_n of_o our_o honest_a friend_n and_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rebuke_n to_o this_o vapour_a adversary_n who_o defiance_n to_o i_o to_o encounter_v his_o proof_n return_v weakness_n with_o shame_n upon_o his_o head_n for_o though_o he_o think_v to_o fling_v i_o to_o the_o dog_n or_o give_v i_o a_o prey_n to_o fierce_a and_o lyon_o second_o behold_v they_o be_v my_o friend_n and_o unananimous_o turn_v with_o i_o against_o himself_o who_o have_v design_v they_o upon_o such_o ill_a service_n a_o recompense_n may_v he_o ever_o find_v at_o what_o time_n he_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o abuse_v our_o friend_n and_o pervert_v their_o write_n and_o so_o i_o shall_v end_v this_o chapter_n wish_v for_o his_o sake_n as_o well_o as_o i_o own_o that_o i_o may_v meet_v if_o not_o with_o more_o reason_n yet_o with_o more_o moderation_n in_o the_o remainder_n of_o his_o discourse_n chap._n viii_o that_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n in_o opposition_n to_o and_o denial_n of_o our_o adversary_n charge_n the_o charge_n by_o he_o endeavour_v to_o be_v defend_v in_o his_o eight_o chapter_n be_v this_o that_o the_o quaker_n affirm_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v no_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n i_o will_v set_v down_o his_o word_n rep._n he_o pass_v over_o no_o less_o than_o six_o testimony_n without_o a_o word_n to_o invalidate_v they_o among_o the_o rest_n this_o 37._o if_o you_o use_v any_o other_o weapon_n then_o the_o light_n within_o inthis_a spiritual_n war_n you_o can_v prevail_v against_o he_o that_o be_v the_o devil_n so_o i_o more_o than_o prove_v my_o assertion_n rejoin_v i_o therefore_o avoid_v consider_v every_o testimony_n he_o bring_v first_o because_o many_o of_o they_o be_v so_o foreign_a that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o pretence_n for_o bring_v they_o and_o next_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v prolix_a i_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o examine_v three_o in_o six_o and_o with_o good_a conscie●e_n i_o can_v assure_v my_o reader_n i_o take_v as_o i_o think_v those_o he_o build_v most_o upon_o if_o he_o doubt_v of_o any_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v bring_v they_o i_o have_v answer_v the_o law_n in_o the_o case_n for_o this_o now_o recite_v it_o be_v as_o weak_a as_o water_n to_o his_o purpose_n though_o a_o strong_a truth_n in_o itself_o for_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o word_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o this_o that_o the_o armour_n of_o light_a the_o apostle_n exhort_v the_o church_n at_o rome_n to_o put_v on_o be_v sufficient_a to_o encounter_n the_o power_n of_o darkness_n and_o that_o such_o as_o will_v overcome_v shall_v not_o neglect_v or_o exchange_v that_o armour_n for_o other_o weapon_n thereby_o not_o in_o the_o least_o exclude_v other_o such_o instrument_n as_o this_o spiritual_a light_n may_v arm_v or_o give_v strength_n and_o invigourate_a to_o our_o help_n and_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o doubt_v that_o i_o firm_o believe_v that_o god_n spirit_n not_o only_o in_o time_n past_a have_v make_v this_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o instruction_n and_o comfort_n but_o do_v even_o yet_o to_o they_o who_o read_v they_o in_o his_o holy_a fear_n and_o wisdom_n reader_n i_o be_o true_o weary_a not_o because_o i_o find_v my_o way_n difficult_a from_o the_o great_a perspicuity_n and_o reason_n that_o be_v on_o the_o side_n of_o my_o adversary_n no_o nothing_o less_o in_o this_o world_n but_o i_o know_v not_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v myself_o but_o i_o meet_v either_o with_o schoolboy_n jeer_n insolent_a language_n equivocation_n or_o horrible_a perversion_n god_n be_v record_n between_o j._n faldo_n and_o i_o who_o of_o we_o two_o have_v behave_v himself_o with_o most_o ingenuity_n in_o encounter_v the_o strong_a and_o full_a argument_n and_o show_v most_o reason_n and_o moderation_n in_o confute_v they_o two_o or_o three_o instance_n of_o his_o failure_n in_o both_o respect_n this_o chapter_n present_v thou_o with_o rep._n the_o first_o thing_n vv._n p._n deal_v with_o be_v a_o passage_n of_o james_n naylor_n '_o we_o for_o those_o only_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n 37_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o who_o they_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o letter_n be_v ever_o enemy_n from_o whence_o say_v penn_n he_o conclude_v that_o we_o account_v it_o a_o very_a dangerous_a thing_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n now_o if_o this_o passage_n have_v any_o relation_n to_o his_o charge_n or_o conclusion_n no_o man_n ever_o see_v the_o like_a he_o shall_v have_v add_v that_o be_v always_o stark_o blind_a rejoin_v here_o he_o have_v give_v my_o reflection_n upon_o his_o ill_a application_n of_o the_o passage_n omit_v both_o my_o exposition_n and_o argument_n a_o injustice_n i_o do_v affirm_v every_o page_n of_o his_o book_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o what_o i_o say_v to_o explain_v the_o sentence_n be_v this_o that_o there_o be_v child_n of_o the_o fleshly_a literal_a and_o historical_a knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o religion_n who_o be_v srranger_n to_o and_o therefore_o persecutor_n of_o the_o child_n bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o in_o all_o age_n there_o have_v be_v more_o or_o less_o of_o this_o among_o outward_a jew_n and_o christian_n and_o let_v j._n faldo_n deny_v this_o if_o he_o dare_v to_o all_o which_o and_o much_o more_o he_o say_v nothing_o but_o to_o his_o blind_a squib_n beforementioned_a he_o add_v this_o wrestle_a of_o the_o passage_n by_o i_o so_o clear_o exposit_v rep._n it_o be_v a_o sign_n his_o judgement_n be_v very_o feeble_a that_o ●ould_v not_o or_o will_v not_o know_v that_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o be_v ●od_a by_o the_o letter_n if_o they_o that_o be_v so_o lead_v be_v ever_o enemy_n to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n rejoin_v what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o make_v we_o enemy_n to_o th●_n very_a scripture_n who_o without_o any_o distinction_n give_v so_o wretched_a a_o mean_v to_o word_n so_o far_o from_o bear_v it_o who_o true_a sense_n be_v as_o i_o observe_v already_o to_o which_o i_o may_v add_v for_o further_a explanation_n thus_o that_o those_o who_o have_v confidence_n in_o the_o letter_n err_v from_o and_o grieve_v the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o withstand_v enemy_n to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n according_a to_o the_o true_a mean_v of_o scripture_n which_o the_o mere_a letter-professor_n as_o such_o can_v never_o attain_v to_o so_o that_o the_o danger_n lie_v here_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o letter_n without_o the_o true_a mean_v of_o the_o letter_n or_o rather_o by_o his_o own_o dark_a apprehension_n concern_v the_o mind_n of_o it_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o it_o as_o the_o jew_n when_o they_o crucify_v christ_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n against_o blasphemer_n this_o be_v the_o genuine_a sense_n of_o our_o friend_n word_n for_o have_v they_o be_v write_v in_o the_o sense_n in_o which_o john_n faldo_n take_v they_o we_o have_v then_o as_o great_o detest_a they_o as_o he_o have_v now_o wrong_v they_o a_o second_o passage_n be_v in_o his_o first_o book_n pag._n 109._o his_o word_n these_o isaac_n penington_n who_o speak_v of_o knowledge_n gain_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n write_v thus_o make_v he_o wise_a and_o able_a in_o his_o head_n to_o oppose_v truth_n and_o so_o bring_v he_o into_o a_o state_n of_o condemnation_n wrath_n and_o misery_n beyond_o the_o heathen_a and_o make_v he_o hard_a to_o be_v wrought_v upon_o by_o the_o light_n and_o power_n of_o truth_n than_o the_o very_a heathen_a upon_o which_o j._n faldo_n bestow_v this_o comment_n if_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o get_v knowledge_n from_o they_o put_v we_o into_o a_o bad_a condition_n beyond_o the_o heathen_a i_o scarce_o know_v what_o be_v more_o
dangerous_a than_o read_v the_o scripture_n reader_n it_o be_v worth_a our_o while_n to_o see_v if_o i._o penington_n be_v as_o bad_a a_o man_n as_o j._n faldo_n represent_v he_o in_o order_n to_o which_o i_o ask_v first_o may_v a_o man_n that_o read_v and_o pretend_v to_o value_v the_o scripture_n from_o up_o a_o understanding_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o be_v absolute_o mistake_v for_o want_v of_o the_o true_a interpreter_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n i_o can_v think_v but_o j._n faldo_n himself_o will_v say_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v i_o be_o sure_a i_o believe_v so_o for_o it_o have_v often_o be_v so_o already_o and_o j._n faldo_n present_a write_n be_v a_o unanswerable_a instance_n for_o the_o point_n the_o next_o question_n i_o will_v ask_v be_v this_o whether_o such_o person_n so_o mistake_v be_v not_o very_o apt_a in_o defence_n of_o their_o own_o conceiving_n to_o oppose_v the_o truth_n itself_o methinks_v the_o whole_a jewish_a church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n visible_a appearance_n in_o the_o world_n in_o dispute_v against_o he_o and_o decry_v of_o his_o religion_n while_o they_o magnify_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a great_a doctor_n of_o they_o shall_v without_o further_a labour_n answer_v that_o question_n in_o the_o affirmative_a next_o let_v i_o ask_v j._n faldo_n if_o the_o high_a conceit_n the_o jew_n have_v of_o their_o knowledge_n in_o the_o command_n doctrine_n and_o prophecy_n of_o scripture_n however_o erroneous_a for_o want_v of_o the_o true_a interpreter_n do_v not_o render_v they_o more_o captious_a and_o obdurate_a than_o the_o heathen_a themselves_o if_o he_o can_v read_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o may_v answer_v this_o question_n to_o our_o mind_n and_o his_o own_o shame_n last_o be_v not_o this_o state_n more_o dangerous_a then_o that_o of_o the_o gentile_n god_n himself_o long_o since_o resolve_v this_o question_n when_o he_o bring_v such_o heavy_a judgement_n upon_o the_o jew_n and_o turn_v the_o stream_n of_o his_o love_n to_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v not_o for_o nought_o those_o word_n be_v leave_v upon_o record_n he_o come_v to_o his_o own_o and_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o that_o be_v he_o come_v to_o the_o nation_n and_o people_n of_o all_o other_o god_n have_v select_v for_o his_o service_n to_o who_o he_o have_v be_v propitious_a beyond_o measure_n who_o he_o redeem_v by_o wonderful_a miracle_n and_o bless_v with_o holy_a leader_n just_a judge_n a_o righteous_a law_n true_a and_o faithful_a prophet_n who_o be_v the_o covenant_n and_o scripture_n who_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o of_o who_o christ_n come_v as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n yet_o they_o receive_v he_o not_o as_o god_n over_o all_o bless_v forever_o manifest_v in_o flesh_n in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n for_o their_o deliverance_n but_o vehement_o reject_v he_o under_o the_o title_n of_o beelzebub_n prince_n of_o devil_n by_o this_o time_n i_o hope_v isaac_n penington_n passage_n be_v vindicate_v from_o the_o malignity_n of_o our_o adversary_n comment_n who_o perversion_n must_v needs_o be_v open_a and_o conspicuous_a to_o all_o that_o read_v he_o first_o in_o charge_v he_o to_o have_v make_v this_o reflection_n upon_o the_o knowledge_n gain_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v none_o of_o i._o p_n word_n next_o in_o conclude_v that_o by_o i._o p_n doctrine_n nothing_o can_v well_o be_v more_o dangerous_a than_o read_v the_o scripture_n who_o always_o be_v and_o yet_o be_v a_o great_a respecter_n and_o reader_n of_o they_o make_v the_o stress_n of_o i._o p_n say_v to_o lie_v in_o a_o dislike_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o scripture_n absolute_o instead_o of_o their_o dark_a interpretation_n upon_o and_o carnal_a deduction_n from_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o only_o level_v his_o discourse_n against_o thus_o have_v we_o be_v serve_v in_o every_o pretend_a proof_n he_o have_v bring_v out_o of_o our_o friend_n write_n to_o prop_v and_o enforce_v his_o feeble_a and_o incredible_a charge_n for_o where_o we_o reprove_v man_n form_n unto_o themselves_o religion_n from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o their_o own_o conception_n of_o it_o and_o give_v a_o check_n to_o their_o great_a eagerness_n to_o comprehend_v the_o most_o weighty_a mystery_n therein_o express_v and_o their_o continual_a question_n cavil_v and_o contend_v concern_v they_o whilst_o they_o themselves_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o very_a first_o principle_n of_o religion_n be_v yet_o stranger_n to_o unfeigned_a repentance_n f●om_o dead_a work_n and_o fear_v towards_o the_o live_a god_n with_o loud_a voice_n and_o clamorous_a tongue_n they_o thus_o exclaim_v against_o we_o after_o this_o unruly_a as_o well_o as_o unjust_a manner_n the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n the_o quaker_n say_v they_o be_v not_o bind_v upon_o they_o the_o quaker_n say_v it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o read_v they_o but_o i_o say_v in_o their_o name_n bless_a be_v they_o who_o read_v true_o understand_v they_o and_o live_v according_a to_o they_o i_o may_v here_o break_v off_o but_o i_o entreat_v my_o reader_n to_o peruse_v two_o notable_a testimony_n give_v by_o university-man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v repute_v famous_a thirty_o year_n ago_o the_o first_o be_v out_o of_o joshua_n sprigg_n book_n entitle_v a_o testimony_n to_o a_o approach_v glory_n pag._n 96._o christ_n desire_v that_o his_o disciple_n may_v be_v sanctify_v not_o by_o plant_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o literal_a word_n in_o their_o mind_n but_o by_o engraft_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o divine_a word_n in_o their_o heart_n again_o in_o pag._n 107._o christ_n may_v offer_v himself_o long_o enough_o in_o the_o letter_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o if_o he_o appear_v not_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o sit_v in_o our_o conscience_n to_o quiet_v they_o we_o shall_v never_o have_v any_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o word_n aright_o and_o in_o page_n 79_o &_o 80._o we_o may_v see_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o look_v upon_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n but_o till_o we_o find_v the_o same_o thing_n do_v in_o we_o in_o some_o measure_n in_o the_o mystery_n we_o can_v find_v little_a comfort_n the_o whole_a history_n of_o christ_n will_v profit_v you_o nothing_o nor_o all_o that_o you_o know_v except_o you_o find_v experimental_o the_o same_o thing_n do_v in_o you_o by_o the_o spirit_n the_o second_o be_v afford_v we_o by_o christopher_n go●d_n style_v bachelor_n of_o divinity_n and_o fellow_n of_o king_n college_n in_o cambridge_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v refresh_v drop_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 12._o there_o be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n nor_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o revelation_n it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n pray_v for_o that_o god_n will_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n again_o in_o pag_n 18._o it_o be_v neither_o moses_n nor_o the_o scripture_n nor_o christ_n work_n can_v settle_v our_o heart_n unless_o the_o father_n be_v in_o they_o etc._n etc._n also_o in_o pag._n 89._o to_o go_v forth_o in_o man_n power_n in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o be_v not_o safe_a yet_o again_o pag._n 87_o upon_o act_n 17._o here_o they_o hold_v paul_n play_v in_o reason_v and_o dispute_v paul_n hold_v up_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o jew_n do_v dispute_v against_o christ_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v that_o that_o all_o the_o learning_n of_o man_n do_v all_o his_o knowledge_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v but_o serve_v he_o to_o oppose_v the_o spirit_n the_o great_a knowledge_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o more_o learning_n if_o it_o be_v only_o of_o man_n the_o great_a opposition_n unto_o christ_n and_o unto_o the_o spirit_n these_o jew_n have_v learning_n and_o knowledge_n in_o the_o scripture_n mere_o to_o oppose_v the_o truth_n the_o power_n and_o life_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o last_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v too_o prolix_a we_o shall_v content_v ourselves_o in_o the_o overlook_a many_o more_o with_o this_o passage_n in_o his_o last_o testimony_n pag._n 71._o upon_o esa_n 25._o there_o be_v that_o have_v devote_v themselves_o to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v other_o that_o have_v their_o life_n in_o the_o creature_n god_n will_v short_o draw_v all_o life_n unto_o himself_o and_o all_o they_o that_o run_v after_o other_o god_n shall_v starve_v and_o famish_v they_o and_o their_o go_n these_o passage_n reader_n speak_v for_o themselves_o and_o which_o be_v more_o so_o much_o for_o we_o that_o till_o j._n faldo_n and_o his_o fellow-separatist_n have_v public_o renounce_v they_o and_o their_o author_n we_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o say_v that_o such_o as_o themselves_o have_v hitherto_o repute_v their_o spiritual_a and_o
as_o say_v of_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o w._n smith_n book_n which_o be_v one_o part_n of_o my_o stress_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o shake_v off_o but_o it_o will_v not_o so_o easy_o acquit_v he_o observe_v his_o reply_n rep._n and_o whereas_o w._n p._n say_v no_o such_o word_n can_v be_v produce_v he_o intend_v no_o other_o but_o that_o smith_n do_v not_o accuse_v himself_o in_o so_o many_o word_n of_o blaspheme_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n from_o thence_o receive_v rejoin_v his_o first_o word_n belie_v i_o nor_o can_v any_o man_n be_v so_o sottish_a as_o to_o believe_v i_o intend_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n believe_v for_o that_o be_v no_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n but_o a_o arrant_a yet_o fond_a cheat_n and_o illusion_n my_o mean_v go_v with_o my_o word_n and_o my_o word_n mean_v as_o i_o just_a now_o explain_v they_o the_o substance_n of_o which_o be_v in_o my_o answer_n though_o evade_v by_o his_o reply_n and_o perhaps_o my_o rejoynder_n will_v meet_v with_o no_o better_a usage_n for_o his_o phrase_n of_o blaspheme_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n i_o will_v tell_v he_o and_o that_o upon_o very_o good_a authority_n that_o he_o now_o play_v the_o canter_n with_o we_o and_o that_o shameful_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n a_o scripture_n for_o that_o i_o entreat_v he_o you_o may_v see_v what_o a_o doctor_n he_o be_v you_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o think_v he_o can_v clasp_v up_o the_o spirit_n with_o his_o bible_n it_o seem_v thus_o far_o john_n faldo_n and_o simon_n magus_n agree_v for_o the_o one_o thought_n he_o can_v buy_v it_o of_o peter_n and_o the_o other_o imply_v he_o may_v have_v it_o of_o his_o bookseller_n indeed_o if_o i_o think_v j._n faldo_n can_v believe_v what_o he_o say_v i_o shall_v be_v the_o tender_a of_o he_o for_o ignorance_n be_v to_o be_v pity_v but_o when_o he_o shall_v shut_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n out_o of_o man_n and_o shut_v he_o up_o in_o the_o scripture_n though_o it_o call_v man_n the_o temple_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n and_o his_o spirit_n whilst_o it_o never_o call_v itself_o so_o but_o holy_a write_n or_o a_o declaration_n of_o thing_n certain_o believe_v he_o be_v to_o be_v censure_v for_o his_o improper_a and_o ambiguous_a term_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o his_o charity_n be_v so_o small_a to_o other_o in_o case_n more_o excusable_a and_o that_o no_o man_n act_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o sentence_n to_o other_o more_o snappish_o and_o imperious_o then_o himself_o however_o i_o shall_v be_v so_o favourable_a as_o to_o take_v his_o word_n in_o this_o sense_n else_o i_o know_v not_o which_o way_n he_o will_v turn_v himself_o viz._n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v when_o it_o please_v by_o the_o scripture_n which_o bring_v he_o and_o his_o cause_n unavoidable_o over_o to_o we_o but_o let_v we_o see_v if_o j._n f._n can_v honest_o fasten_v any_o of_o those_o forecited_n epithet_n upon_o w._n smith_n book_n if_o he_o can_v we_o will_v condemn_v the_o book_n as_o hearty_o as_o j._n f._n traduce_v we_o in_o he_o but_o if_o he_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v wrong_v w._n s._n god_n that_o live_v forever_o will_v avenge_v our_o innocency_n upon_o he_o which_o we_o desire_v may_v extend_v no_o further_o then_o to_o work_v he_o into_o true_a repentance_n and_o effectual_o to_o vindicate_v we_o in_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o misinform_v his_o word_n be_v these_o rep._n but_o that_o all_o that_o inventory_n of_o execrable_a name_n w._n smith_n do_v intend_v of_o the_o scripture_n 42._o and_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n ground_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o write_a word_n take_v these_o testimony_n john_n 1._o 9_o he_o that_o be_v john_n behold_v he_o and_o his_o glory_n and_o feel_v his_o power_n and_o what_o his_o power_n take_v away_o than_o he_o declare_v he_o as_o he_o know_v he_o and_o not_o from_o any_o tradition_n or_o write_v before_o he_o why_o then_o do_v teach_v for_o doctrine_n man_n tradition_n run_v into_o the_o line_n of_o what_o other_o have_v write_v morn_n watch_n pag._n 6._o rejoin_v the_o passage_n from_o whence_o the_o particular_a epithet_n be_v take_v shall_v be_v consider_v anon_o this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o testimony_n he_o bring_v to_o prove_v he_o right_o cite_v and_o apply_v his_o former_a testimony_n out_o of_o the_o same_o author_n which_o have_v he_o intend_v in_o reality_n he_o shall_v as_o well_o have_v insert_v the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o to_o help_v such_o as_o have_v not_o see_v his_o other_o book_n into_o a_o true_a judgement_n of_o this_o but_o then_o may_v he_o say_v i_o shall_v not_o make_v the_o best_a of_o my_o case_n which_o to_o do_v he_o no_o wrong_n he_o study_v more_o than_o the_o truth_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o next_o to_o his_o make_v the_o worst_a of_o we_o and_o now_o reader_n that_o this_o proof_n be_v as_o lame_a as_o his_o former_a and_o whole_o as_o silent_a to_o his_o wicked_a purpose_n consider_v i_o entreat_v thou_o the_o drift_n of_o this_o man_n as_o his_o discourse_n at_o large_a manifest_v two_o thing_n he_o have_v in_o his_o eye_n first_o to_o beat_v people_n off_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n in_o the_o sense_n christ_n once_o speak_v those_o word_n to_o wit_n not_o the_o scripture_n but_o man_n humane_a interpretation_n of_o they_o with_o such_o form_n and_o worship_n as_o they_o have_v invent_v in_o the_o apostasy_n from_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o christianity_n as_o these_o word_n by_o j._n f._n purposely_o omit_v notwithstanding_o they_o lie_v between_o the_o two_o first_o sentence_n which_o therefore_o make_v a_o absolute_a break_v though_o he_o make_v none_o do_v undeniable_o evince_v to_o wit_n weigh_v this_o truth_n all_o you_o priest_n and_o professor_n and_o ponder_v it_o in_o your_o heart_n have_v you_o behold_v christ_n and_o see_v his_o glory_n have_v you_o feel_v his_o power_n to_o take_v away_o your_o sin_n if_o yea_o then_o why_o do_v you_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n man_n tradition_n again_o pag._n 16._o for_o they_o be_v from_o the_o life_n that_o give_v forth_o scripture_n their_o understand_n be_v darken_v and_o they_o err_v and_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o god_n last_o in_o the_o 14_o page_n he_o have_v these_o word_n all_o the_o vain_a worship_n and_o custom_n which_o people_n at_o this_o day_n be_v in_o who_o yet_o abide_v in_o form_n and_o tradition_n be_v all_o come_v up_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v after_o man_n tradition_n and_o not_o after_o christ_n and_o the_o conception_n of_o all_o have_v be_v in_o man_n imagination_n and_o have_v be_v bring_v forth_o in_o his_o own_o will_n and_o wisdom_n by_o all_o which_o reader_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o distinguish_v between_o man_n tradition_n and_o god_n tradition_n for_o first_o how_o can_v he_o mean_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o first_o passage_n the_o middle_n of_o which_o our_o adversary_n so_o wilful_o drop_v when_o he_o imply_v that_o from_o feel_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n to_o take_v away_o sin_n man_n will_v leave_v off_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o tradition_n of_o man_n make_v they_o thereby_o sinful_a and_o a_o sin_n to_o teach_v they_o when_o j._n faldo_n confess_v that_o upon_o the_o spirit_n be_v move_v and_o give_v we_o the_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n we_o do_v allow_v the_o doctrine_n therein_o deliver_v to_o be_v right_o preach_v in_o the_o second_o passage_n he_o undeniable_o distinguish_v between_o the_o scripture_n right_o understand_v and_o their_o mistake_n of_o they_o to_o who_o he_o write_v not_o know_v say_v he_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v darken_v which_o import_v that_o true_o to_o know_v and_o teach_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v a_o quite_o differ_v thing_n from_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o tradition_n of_o men._n nor_o be_v his_o three_o passage_n less_o clear_a in_o the_o point_n pag._n 14._o sin●●_n he_o explain_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o those_o offensive_a word_n to_o j._n faldo_n ear_n by_o such_o custom_n worship_n and_o tradition_n as_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n and_o that_o take_v their_o rise_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o proceed_v from_o the_o imagination_n will_n and_o wisdom_n of_o man_n therefore_o not_o the_o write_n of_o either_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n that_o be_v before_o such_o apostasy_n and_o which_o be_v give_v forth_o as_o they_o be_v move_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o second_o thing_n great_o in_o the_o author_n eye_n and_o with_o which_o his_o spirit_n seem_v to_o be_v press_v through_o the_o
mouth_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o something_o in_o lieu_n of_o a_o mouth_n and_o not_o his_o mouth_n therefore_o be_v on_o purpose_n bring_v in_o by_o i_o to_o prevent_v that_o very_a construction_n which_o my_o adversary_n have_v not_o withstand_v hit_v upon_o but_o to_o the_o next_o part_n of_o his_o reply_n which_o be_v still_o by_o way_n of_o consequence_n as_o he_o think_v from_o my_o principle_n rep._n four_o what_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o lord_n do_v not_o say_v unless_o he_o that_o utter_v they_o have_v the_o like_a commission_n from_o god_n as_o jeremy_n rejoin_v a_o mere_a tale_n of_o j._n faldo_n make_v they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n let_v who_o will_v speak_v they_o or_o say_v they_o over_o but_o they_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o or_o through_o that_o person_n that_o be_v dead_a to_o they_o and_o instead_o of_o hear_v and_o receive_v they_o from_o such_o intruder_n and_o false_a pretender_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v flun●_n back_o into_o their_o face_n and_o they_o reprove_v for_o false_a prophet_n what_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v to_o take_v my_o name_n into_o thy_o mouth_n say_v god_n that_o hate_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o how_o be_v he_o reform_v that_o be_v not_o renew_v into_o that_o life_n power_n and_o wisdom_n that_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o before_o he_o come_v to_o be_v through_o transgression_n deform_v the_o drift_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v to_o prop_n and_o maintain_v a_o company_n of_o dry_a senseless_a and_o unregenerate_a talker_n for_o worldly_a maintenance_n they_o be_v of_o their_o race_n who_o teach_v for_o hire_n and_o divine_v for_o money_n the_o chemarim_n or_o black-coat_n of_o old_a time_n the_o plain_a english_a of_o all_o j._n f_n jeer_n and_o rail_n against_o we_o be_v this_o we_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o preach_v or_o teach_v what_o he_o have_v not_o experience_v of_o god_n work_n in_o his_o own_o heart_n viz._n who_o preach_v of_o david_n languish_n and_o never_o be_v in_o they_o of_o the_o terror_n the_o apostle_n know_v and_o never_o feel_v they_o in_o fine_a the_o whole_a exercise_n that_o attend_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o repentance_n to_o the_o complete_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o never_o have_v experimental_o tread_v that_o path_n and_o pass_v through_o those_o divers_a state_n he_o be_v a_o ill_a guide_n that_o never_o go_v the_o way_n himself_o and_o a_o unskilful_a physician_n who_o be_v ignorant_a both_o of_o the_o disease_n and_o cure_n his_o 5_o consequence_n be_v this_o rep._n that_o all_o that_o call_v they_o by_o that_o name_n and_o tender_v they_o to_o other_o be_v thief_n and_o robber_n rejoin_v this_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o gibberish_n i_o do_v not_o understand_v when_o do_v we_o call_v any_o thief_n or_o robber_n for_o a_o name_n give_v to_o the_o scripture_n if_o they_o he_o mean_v on_o what_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n can_v he_o fasten_v these_o word_n it_o be_v true_a i_o say_v then_o and_o i_o say_v again_o they_o be_v all_o thief_n and_o robber_n that_o steal_v other_o man_n experience_n and_o then_o preach_v they_o for_o advantage_n for_o they_o that_o steal_v of_o old_a be_v such_o as_o speak_v other_o man_n word_n without_o their_o sinse_n and_o as_o the_o false_a prophet_n steal_v the_o true_a prophet_n word_n which_o be_v one_o of_o their_o mark_n so_o the_o true_a prophet_n do_v not_o speak_v in_o imitation_n of_o one_o another_o but_o as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v upon_o their_o spirit_n so_o they_o declare_v it_o which_o be_v prove_v thus_o first_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o word_n or_o write_n of_o the_o true_a prophet_n themselves_o than_o it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v say_v let_v the_o prophet_n that_o have_v a_o dream_n tell_v a_o dream_n and_o he_o that_o have_v my_o word_n speak_v my_o word_n faithful_o since_o most_o if_o not_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v the_o word_n or_o write_n of_o the_o true_a prophet_n by_o they_o so_o that_o after_o j._n f_n conceit_n every_o one_o of_o they_o may_v have_v speak_v it_o and_o then_o too_o when_o it_o best_o please_v he_o which_o be_v utter_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o very_a word_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o text._n i_o conclude_v it_o be_v a_o invisible_a immediate_a and_o spiritual_a word_n the_o true_a prophet_n speak_v by_o as_o they_o be_v move_v of_o it_o two_o it_o be_v a_o fire_n and_o hammer_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o three_o it_o come_v at_o certain_a time_n to_o they_o who_o have_v so_o much_o of_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v then_o extant_a always_o by_o they_o therefore_o not_o the_o scripture_n but_o a_o immediate_a word_n four_o otherwise_o there_o have_v be_v no_o more_o scripture_n upon_o inspiration_n but_o a_o continual_a discant_v upon_o those_o they_o have_v therefore_o still_o a_o immediate_a word_n and_o not_o the_o word_n and_o write_n of_o other_o last_o if_o the_o difference_n then_o between_o a_o true_a and_o a_o fal●e_a prophet_n be_v the_o declare_v faithful_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o and_o as_o they_o feel_v the_o operation_n and_o motion_n of_o it_o in_o themselves_o and_o a_o borrow_a or_o rather_o steal_v those_o word_n and_o so_o without_o either_o the_o operation_n or_o motion_n of_o the_o same_o eternal_a word_n which_o be_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n much_o more_o than_o ought_v the_o true_a prophet_n in_o these_o evangelical_n time_n to_o who_o be_v promise_v a_o more_o large_a effusion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o wait_v for_o the_o operation_n and_o motion_n of_o god_n eternal_a power_n word_n or_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o order_n to_o instruct_v other_o and_o more_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o repute_v they_o false_a prophet_n that_o in_o these_o day_n of_o great_a light_n shall_v prop_v up_o themselves_o as_o god_n minister_n with_o the_o old_a cheat_n of_o steal_v their_o neighbour_n word_n certain_o they_o be_v less_o sufferable_a now_o then_o at_o that_o time_n and_o if_o that_o dispensation_n renounce_v they_o this_o aught_o much_o more_o but_o j._n f._n think_v he_o say_v something_o when_o he_o fling_v this_o consequence_n upon_o i_o as_o ridiculous_a rep._n that_o jeremy_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v our_o neighbour_n though_o dead_a two_o or_o three_o thousand_o year_n since_o rejoin_v i_o never_o say_v they_o be_v john_n faldo_n neighbour_n nor_o do_v he_o deserve_v so_o good_a company_n though_o he_o need_v it_o but_o let_v it_o suffice_v that_o j._n f._n steal_v as_o bad_a as_o jeremiah_n neighbour_n do_v and_o thus_o far_o more_o bold_o and_o notorious_o in_o that_o they_o perhaps_o get_v the_o true_a prophet_n word_n so_o soon_o that_o some_o may_v not_o know_v who_o have_v they_o first_o whereas_o j._n f._n run_v back_o two_o or_o three_o thousand_o year_n a_o pilfer_n for_o his_o hackny-sermon_n out_o of_o they_o which_o be_v so_o well_o know_v to_o be_v other_o man_n line_n and_o labour_n methinks_v people_n shall_v not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o miserable_o gull_v nor_o lie_v at_o the_o expense_n of_o maintain_v a_o priest_n to_o tell_v his_o tale_n who_o may_v buy_v each_o of_o they_o a_o bible_n contain_v the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n for_o five_o shilling_n more_o to_o their_o edification_n since_o their_o minister_n or_o master_n rather_o deny_v inspiration_n and_o consequent_o all_o inward_a certaint●●_n to_o their_o own_o conception_n and_o gloss_n hug_v fallibility_n as_o a_o necessary_a article_n and_o fling_v it_o more_o than_o once_o in_o our_o tooth_n as_o arrogant_a heresy_n to_o say_v we_o be_v certain_a of_o what_o we_o teach_v true_o my_o soul_n magnify_v the_o lord_n and_o i_o rejoice_v in_o god_n my_o saviour_n that_o he_o have_v dis-vailed_a this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n and_o dis-spoiled_a that_o paint_a jezabel_n and_o splendid_a whore_n of_o babylon_n who_o have_v long_a fate_n upon_o the_o many_o water_n and_o have_v discover_v her_o merchant_n her_o ware_n her_o witchcraft_n whereby_o her_o abomination_n be_v know_v and_o her_o dark_a stratagem_n and_o deep_a subtlety_n find_v out_o it_o be_v not_o her_o say_n she_o be_v a_o bride_n a_o church_n nor_o her_o merchant_n and_o people_n that_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o christian_n that_o will_v serve_v their_o turn_n for_o their_o conception_n be_v know_v their_o original_a their_o number_n their_o power_n their_o device_n and_o utmost_a extent_n and_o they_o be_v all_o find_v to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o redeem_v power_n life_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o lamb._n and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_o i_o engage_v on_o earth_n and_o the_o reproach_n that_o attend_v i_o on_o that_o account_n be_v unutterable_o more_o grateful_a to_o i_o then_o
any_o draw_v up_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o substance_n they_o be_v as_o man_n lose_v cold_a and_o heartless_a which_o be_v a_o plain_a evidence_n to_o i_o that_o they_o prefer_v the_o shadow_n before_o the_o substance_n be_v mere_o exercise_v about_o childish_a thing_n and_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o come_v up_o to_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o excellency_n and_o glory_n of_o what_o baptism_n and_o other_o ordinance_n signify_v etc._n etc._n p._n 560._o c._n goad_n last_o testimony_n p._n 76._o ordinance_n be_v vail_n man_n ministry_n be_v a_o veil_n if_o we_o see_v god_n in_o it_o it_o be_v but_o dark_o c._n goad_n secret_a and_o safe_a chamber_n p._n 72._o the_o carnal_a jew_n look_v for_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o letter_n the_o spiritual_a jew_n look_v for_o the_o spirit_n abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n seek_v a_o country_n not_o a_o earthly_a one_o but_o a_o heavenly_a we_o pitch_v upon_o figure_n and_o vail_n and_o enter_v not_o within_o the_o veil_n these_o outward_a thing_n be_v a_o veil_n a_o table_n make_v a_o snare_n but_o when_o we_o be_v turn_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o veil_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v wisdom_n etc._n etc._n make_v the_o veil_n the_o thick_a those_o that_o only_o feed_v upon_o the_o veil_n upon_o outward_a thing_n in_o which_o god_n may_v appear_v their_o life_n shall_v be_v destroy_v when_o other_o be_v feed_v and_o feast_v joshuah_n sprig_n pag._n 142_o 143_o 144_o 147_o 148._o the_o design_n be_v to_o couple_n the_o lord_n and_o ordinance_n together_o and_o we_o can_v endure_v to_o hear_v of_o the_o part_n of_o they_o swear_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o swear_v by_o malcham_n so_o we_o have_v but_o ordinance_n we_o be_v well_o something_o from_o the_o fleshly_a form_n and_o appearance_n we_o do_v promise_v ourselves_o and_o so_o like_o the_o israelite_n hanker_v after_o the_o fleshpot_n of_o egypt_n though_o they_o have_v as_o good_a meat_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o though_o god_n offer_v himself_o and_o christian_n tell_v you_o they_o can_v find_v god_n in_o such_o form_n but_o find_v he_o abundant_o good_a in_o the_o spirit_n and_o though_o he_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n yet_o they_o find_v he_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o press_v you_o to_o wait_v till_o god_n appear_v to_o you_o in_o the_o spirit_n o_o say_v you_o i_o can_v never_o believe_v it_o that_o god_n shall_v do_v it_o without_o a_o ordinance_n this_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o fleshly_a form_n do_v add_v something_o to_o god_n who_o be_v all_o in_o all_o be_v sufficient_a without_o it_o you_o be_v like_o a_o man_n that_o be_v keep_v up_o with_o cordial_n not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o he_o that_o be_v in_o a_o way_n of_o recovery_n when_o you_o want_v the_o physician_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o your_o life_n be_v worth_a and_o the_o cordial_a if_o it_o be_v long_o a_o fetch_v you_o begin_v to_o faint_v you_o have_v not_o your_o strength_n within_o you_o but_o in_o cordial_n without_o you_o so_o be_v the_o case_n between_o you_o that_o live_v upon_o ordinance_n and_o they_o that_o live_v upon_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n christ_n be_v never_o in_o a_o journey_n or_o to_o fetch_v a_o great_a way_n off_o t._n colliar_n work_n p._n 46._o the_o christian_n privilege_n under_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v all_o spiritual_a and_o so_o be_v their_o ordinance_n t._n colliar_n work_n p._n 241._o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_a man_n to_o himself_o yet_o this_o dispensation_n of_o the_o father_n be_v but_o a_o fleshly_a dispensation_n comparative_o with_o a_o more_o spiritual_a this_o fleshly_a righteousness_n answer_v a_o fleshly_a transgression_n thus_o likewise_o have_v he_o give_v ordinance_n answerable_a to_o this_o fleshly_a dispensation_n wherein_o when_o he_o please_v he_o appear_v in_o and_o through_o these_o ordinance_n yet_o note_n that_o god_n never_o appear_v in_o any_o fleshly_a dispensation_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o that_o through_o these_o he_o may_v bring_v up_o soul_n to_o himself_o in_o the_o spirit_n sprig_n testimony_n to_o the_o approach_a glory_n p._n 55._o ordinance_n be_v but_o the_o shadow_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o image_n therefore_o take_v heed_n of_o idolize_v form_n your_o interest_n lie_v in_o know_v the_o father_n not_o in_o know_v of_o the_o form_n whatsoever_o and_o take_v heed_n of_o censure_v and_o judge_v spiritual_a discovery_n chap._n two_o of_o true_a and_o false_a ministry_n our_o adversary_n endeavour_v to_o strengthen_v his_o general_a charge_n consider_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n by_o prove_v our_o denial_n of_o each_o ordinance_n in_o particular_a he_o begin_v in_o his_o other_o book_n with_o the_o ministry_n his_o proof_n as_o he_o call_v they_o be_v these_o and_o their_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n we_o deny_v which_o be_v mediate_v j._n parn._n shield_n p._n 16._o also_o g._n fox_n in_o his_o gr._n mist_n p._n 45._o but_o who_o can_v witness_v a_o immediate_a call_n from_o god_n and_o speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o such_o travel_n from_o place_n to_o place_n have_v no_o certain_a dwelling-place_n this_o ministry_n we_o own_o and_o witness_v now_o without_o report_v one_o word_n of_o my_o answer_n he_o conclude_v his_o first_o paragraph_n concern_v j._n parnels_n word_n thus_o have_v this_o charge_n confess_v there_o need_v no_o further_a debate_n o_o disingenuous_a man_n what!_o only_o repeat_v the_o charge_n and_o the_o pretend_a proof_n out_o of_o j._n p._n without_o insert_v any_o thing_n of_o my_o defence_n or_o explanation_n and_o then_o cry_v have_v this_o charge_n confess_v there_o need_v no_o further_a debate_n poor_a brag_n yet_o nimble_a and_o notable_a way_n of_o contract_a controversy_n indeed_o what_o be_v this_o but_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n over_o again_o but_o as_o a_o man_n that_o have_v forget_v himself_o in_o his_o next_o section_n he_o thus_o recollect_n reply_v p._n 51._o to_o my_o proof_n of_o a_o call_v by_o man_n w._n p._n say_v nothing_o but_o that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v he_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v not_o go_v you_o forth_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n that_o belong_v unto_o all_o man_n no_o more_o then_o because_o prince_n send_v ambassador_n to_o prince_n with_o their_o credential_n that_o therefore_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o do_v the_o like_a in_o imitation_n without_o consider_v necessary_a qualification_n thus_o far_o w._n p._n do_v you_o ever_o meet_v with_o so_o ignorant_a and_o impertinent_a a_o answer_n do_v ever_o any_o of_o we_o take_v those_o word_n for_o our_o only_a call_n or_o pretend_v we_o have_v a_o call_v thereby_o to_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n rejoynder_n why_o so_o much_o contempt_n i_o have_v hitherto_o think_v that_o christ_n commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n have_v be_v pretend_v by_o you_o to_o be_v a_o successive_a commission_n if_o neither_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n within_o nor_o the_o scripture_n without_o give_v not_o that_o call_n what_o do_v it_o have_v much_o more_o concern_v j._n f_o to_o declare_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o his_o mediate_a call_n and_o not_o to_o ask_v if_o ever_o any_o meet_v with_o so_o ignorant_a and_o impertinent_a a_o answer_n but_o let_v this_o suffice_v that_o he_o deny_v that_o any_o of_o they_o pretend_v a_o call_n or_o authority_n from_o christ_n commission_n to_o his_o disciple_n to_o preach_v etc._n etc._n next_o that_o be_v can_v only_o mean_v by_o a_o mediate_a call_n that_o of_o the_o people_n since_o he_o have_v exclude_v a_o call_n by_o the_o spirit_n within_o and_o the_o scripture_n without_o but_o because_o the_o call_v of_o a_o people_n be_v neither_o that_o which_o qualifi_v nor_o authorize_v any_o man_n in_o himself_o without_o the_o commission_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o a_o man_n self_n it_o be_v the_o commission_n immediate_o receive_v from_o god_n spirit_n and_o proper_a qualification_n that_o make_v the_o minister_n and_o not_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v a_o invention_n hatch_v in_o babylon_n whereby_o as_o well_o blind_a pharisees_n as_o true_a disciple_n base_a hireling_n as_o godly_a shepherd_n may_v be_v make_v minister_n there_o be_v this_o further_a lazy_a end_n in_o it_o that_o be_v once_o call_v by_o any_o people_n they_o think_v themselves_o only_o oblige_v to_o reside_v there_o where_o they_o may_v take_v their_o ease_n unless_o a_o fat_a benefice_n present_v itself_o at_o which_o they_o have_v be_v always_o wont_a to_o catch_v with_o greediness_n still_o with_o this_o design_n that_o they_o may_v live_v with_o more_o worldly_a peace_n and_o fatness_n this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o door_n by_o which_o the_o apostasy_n creep_v in_o for_o the_o whole_a world_n god_n field_n or_o vineyard_n and_o such_o as_o he_o call_v
the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n we_o own_o honour_n and_o love_n and_o only_o deny_v and_o reject_v that_o ministry_n which_o be_v by_o the_o will_n study_v or_o acquisition_n of_o man_n in_o his_o unregenerate_v state_n who_o not_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o effectual_a operation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o themfelve_n be_v whole_o dark_a as_o to_o those_o thing_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o true_a ministry_n not_o know_v what_o they_o deny_v nor_o whereof_o they_o affirm_v which_o do_v not_o edify_v but_o hazard_v the_o immortal_a soul_n of_o man_n and_o as_o they_o want_v the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a to_o instruct_v they_o so_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o and_o not_o wait_v to_o feel_v a_o enduement_n with_o divine_a power_n from_o on_o high_a there_o proceed_v no_o spiritual_a life_n or_o divine_a virtue_n from_o they_o to_o make_v their_o ministry_n effectual_a which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o lamentable_a decay_n of_o holy_a live_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o great_a increase_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o unsavoury_a and_o irreligious_a conversation_n i_o will_v conclude_v with_o two_o or_o three_o testimony_n give_v by_o man_n once_o in_o request_n with_o separatist_n christopher_n goad_n invalidity_n of_o church_n censure_n pag._n 64_o 65._o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o make_v minister_n and_o those_o minister_n that_o remain_v by_o the_o spirit_n do_v minister_v the_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v minister_a of_o the_o gospel_n when_o we_o mivister_v the_o spirit_n i_o be_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o far_o as_o the_o spirit_n speak_v in_o i_o and_o by_o i_o in_o whosoever_o the_o spirit_n stand_v up_o and_o speak_v that_o person_n for_o the_o time_n be_v a_o minister_n a_o true_a minister_n the_o spirit_n do_v not_o regard_v sex_n the_o spirit_n regard_v not_o age_n learned_a or_o unlearned_a it_o be_v not_o age_n nor_o sex_n nor_o any_o major_a part_n can_v minister_v spirit_n but_o who_o the_o spirit_n please_v christopher_n goad_n right_a spir._n etc._n etc._n p._n 21_o 22._o the_o ministry_n that_o be_v call_v we_o off_o from_o man_n from_o the_o gloworm_n light_n of_o this_o creation_n from_o man_n part_n a_o gift_n into_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o ministry_n we_o shall_v look_v after_o the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v no_o true_a prophet_n no_o true_a testimony_n give_v of_o christ_n but_o by_o those_o that_o see_v he_o and_o the_o near_a to_o he_o the_o clear_a sight_n of_o he_o the_o more_o clear_a and_o powerful_a be_v the_o testimony_n give_v of_o he_o that_o testimony_n that_o be_v give_v to_o he_o by_o those_o that_o do_v not_o see_v he_o present_a and_o come_v be_v not_o in_o deed_n a_o testimony_n to_o christ_n but_o to_o anti-christ_n he_o be_v such_o a_o prophet_n as_o balaam_n be_v that_o have_v nothing_o but_o notion_n all_o true_a prophet_n that_o prophesy_v of_o christ_n see_v he_o and_o he_o be_v in_o they_o christopher_n goad_n paraphrase_n upon_o act._n 17._o p._n 18._o we_o know_v no_o other_o guide_n but_o the_o spirit_n there_o be_v not_o any_o minister_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v our_o guide_n or_o any_o company_n of_o minister_n ●ut_v the_o spirit_n if_o he_o speak_v in_o they_o and_o by_o they_o we_o have_v but_o one_o master_n that_o be_v christ_n t._n collier_n in_o his_o work_n p._n 47_o 48._o and_o p._n 430._o upon_o that_o scripture_n mal._n 27._o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v preserve_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n now_o this_o usual_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o minister_n who_o have_v give_v themselves_o the_o title_n of_o priest_n and_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v seek_v the_o knowledge_n at_o their_o mouth_n and_o indeed_o they_o themselves_o have_v do_v what_o in_o they_o lie_v not_o only_o to_o bring_v people_n into_o this_o error_n and_o ignorance_n but_o to_o keep_v they_o in_o it_o whereas_o christ_n be_v indeed_o the_o alone_a priest_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o jew_n type_n and_o the_o people_n be_v to_o seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n but_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n he_o be_v call_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o covenant_n malipiero_n 3._o 1._o the_o alone_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n of_o his_o people_n the_o spirit_n be_v lose_v anti-christ_n set_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n human_a industry_n tongue_n and_o art_n in_o room_n of_o it_o it_o be_v the_o anoint_v of_o anti-christ_n for_o in_o all_o thing_n anti-christ_n seek_v to_o imitate_v christ_n as_o well_o in_o the_o flesh_n as_o in_o the_o spirit_n again_o the_o saint_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o apostle_n be_v w._n dell_n sermon_n pag._n 16_o 17_o 18._o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o this_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o minister_n for_o first_o if_o they_o have_v not_o this_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n they_o have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o for_o christ_n send_v they_o only_o as_o his_o father_n send_v he_o without_o this_o power_n they_o be_v insufficient_a for_o the_o ministry_n for_o no_o man_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n by_o any_o natural_a part_n and_o ability_n of_o his_o own_o but_o only_o by_o this_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o till_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o this_o notwithstanding_o all_o his_o other_o accomplishment_n he_o be_v altogether_o insufficient_a but_o only_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n come_v upon_o they_o he_o can_v speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n christ_n himself_o without_o this_o power_n of_o god_n can_v not_o have_v speak_v one_o word_n of_o god_n w._n dell._n stumble_v stone_n p._n 8._o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o common_a ministry_n belong_v equaly_a and_o the_o like_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n of_o christ_n w._n dell._n trial_n of_o spirit_n p._n 17_o 18._o the_o true_a prophet_n speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o and_o in_o the_o spirit_n as_o paul_n say_v of_o himself_o and_o other_o believe_v who_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n we_o have_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o false_a prophet_n though_o they_o speak_v the_o word_n of_o the_o letter_n exact_o and_o that_o to_o the_o very_a original_a and_o curiosity_n of_o criticism_n yet_o speak_v it_o without_o the_o spirit_n they_o be_v false_a prophet_n before_o god_n and_o his_o true_a church_n see_v all_o right_a prophecy_n have_v proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o world_n but_o especial_o it_o must_v so_o proceed_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o new-testament_n wherein_o god_n have_v promise_v the_o large_a effusion_n of_o his_o spirit_n greenham_n serm._n 1._o p._n 51._o without_o this_o spirit_n of_o god_n no_o holy_a exercise_n can_v have_v its_o full_a effect_n for_o the_o word_n work_v not_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v want_v when_o we_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o teach_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o law_n or_o the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n we_o be_v little_o affect_v therewith_o unless_o god_n give_v we_o of_o his_o good_a spirit_n to_o profit_n by_o the_o same_o chap._n iii_o that_o we_o own_o a_o gospel-church_n contrary_a to_o our_o adversary_n charge_n the_o next_o thing_n our_o adversary_n charge_v we_o with_o a_o denial_n of_o be_v a_o gospel-church_n one_o of_o his_o proof_n as_o he_o will_v have_v they_o call_v be_v in_o j._n n_n love_n to_o the_o lose_a pag._n 17._o and_o the_o church_n so_o gather_v into_o god_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n where_o the_o spirit_n alone_o be_v teacher_n upon_o which_o he_o argue_v thus_o the_o gospel-church_n be_v a_o church_n which_o have_v other_o teacher_n and_o not_o the_o spirit_n alone_o therefore_o the_o quaker_n deny_v a_o gospel-church_n and_o they_o contradict_v themselves_o for_o they_o have_v more_o teacher_n than_o all_o other_o thus_o his_o first_o book_n pag._n 16._o to_o which_o i_o return_v that_o such_o as_o be_v not_o blind_v with_o prejudice_n may_v discern_v that_o from_o our_o speak_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o god_n which_o say_v the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o the_o quaker_n be_v in_o god_n he_o infer_v that_o we_o deny_v all_o visible_a religious_a society_n common_o call_v by_o the_o ancient_n asia_n thessalonica_n ephesus_n corinth_n etc._n etc._n now_o observe_v his_o reply_n reply_v pag._n 59_o not_o one_o word_n of_o this_o in_o all_o my_o book_n my_o charge_n be_v that_o they_o deny_v a_o gospel-church_n not_o visible_a religious_a society_n rejoynder_n confident_o say_v but_o if_o all_o the_o word_n be_v not_o there_o do_v it_o follow_v
the_o matter_n they_o import_v be_v not_o there_o if_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a that_o we_o deny_v a_o visible_a religious_a society_n to_o be_v a_o church_n what_o make_v he_o to_o infer_v our_o denial_n of_o a_o gospel-church_n from_o our_o assert_v it_o to_o be_v invisible_a two_o thing_n must_v follow_v from_o this_o reply_n either_o a_o gospel-church_n be_v not_o visible_a and_o then_o he_o break_v his_o own_o neck_n or_o not_o a_o religious_a society_n and_o so_o he_o be_v impious_a if_o then_o a_o gospel-church_n be_v a_o visible_a religious_a society_n and_o we_o deny_v a_o gospel-church_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o we_o deny_v a_o visible_a religious_a society_n which_o in_o john_n faldo_n opinion_n make_v up_o a_o gospel-church_n to_o conclude_v a_o gospel-church_n and_o a_o visible_a religious_a society_n he_o make_v to_o be_v quite_o differ_v thing_n but_o perhaps_o he_o will_v come_v off_o thus_o i_o do_v not_o say_v you_o deny_v the_o visible_a religious_a society_n call_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n etc._n etc._n but_o that_o you_o deny_v they_o or_o such_o as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v church_n but_o neither_o will_v this_o serve_v his_o turn_n for_o we_o both_o own_v they_o to_o have_v be_v gospel-churche_n and_o be_v teach_v by_o j._n f._n to_o believe_v that_o a_o gospel-church_n be_v not_o only_o not_o invisible_a but_o a_o other_o thing_n than_o a_o visible_a religious_a society_n too_o it_o be_v worth_a our_o while_n to_o hear_v his_o reason_n for_o it_o reply_v p._n 59_o religious_a society_n may_v be_v as_o far_o from_o a_o gospel-church_n as_o half_a a_o dozen_o christian_a friend_n associate_v together_o to_o eat_v a_o good_a dinner_n or_o carry_v on_o a_o trade_n yet_o he_o dirt_v i_o with_o want_n of_o honesty_n to_o grace_v his_o forgery_n rejoynder_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v to_o the_o alehouse_n or_o tavern_n whether_o he_o invite_v a_o friend_n of_o we_o after_o dispute_v with_o he_o doubtless_o not_o out_o of_o love_n to_o our_o friend_n but_o the_o good_a liquor_n a_o sort_n of_o liberty_n once_o count_v scandalous_a by_o many_o of_o his_o pretension_n especial_o when_o just_a after_o so_o serious_a a_o exercise_n but_o it_o be_v grow_v familiar_a with_o man_n of_o his_o coat_n to_o fall_v from_o the_o bible_n to_o the_o pot_n and_o so_o back_o again_o but_o friendly_a reader_n what_o say_v thou_o of_o this_o man_n evasion_n who_o will_v have_v i_o to_o mean_v by_o visible_a religious_a society_n visible_a civil_a society_n for_o such_o i_o count_v good_a man_n at_o a_o ordinary_a or_o a_o committee_n of_o trade_n vain_a and_o shallow_a man_n do_v i_o not_o give_v intimation_n enough_o what_o religious_a society_n i_o mean_v when_o i_o instance_a the_o church_n of_o asia_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n to_o explain_v what_o i_o mean_v thereby_o whether_o i_o do_v play_v the_o forger_n or_o my_o adversary_n the_o dishonest_a shifter_n let_v the_o impartial_a reader_n judge_n again_o reply_n w._n p._n proceed_v p._n 113._o in_o the_o same_o evil_n and_o from_o our_o assert_v the_o spirit_n to_o be_v the_o only_a gospel-teacher_n he_o conclude_v that_o we_o deny_v all_o preach_a of_o man_n though_o by_o the_o spirit_n the_o four_o last_o word_n though_o by_o the_o spirit_n be_v add_v by_o he_o and_o mere_o forge_v rejoynder_n they_o may_v be_v add_v but_o not_o forge_v one_o will_v think_v it_o be_v only_o then_o when_o without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o we_o deny_v it_o by_o his_o word_n and_o that_o hurt_v we_o not_o but_o i_o take_v it_o the_o other_o way_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v a_o mistake_v he_o commit_v against_o we_o wherever_o the_o like_a subject_n fall_v in_o his_o way_n for_o this_o imply_v as_o if_o we_o deny_v preach_v by_o inspiration_n and_o that_o he_o all_o along_o have_v mantain_v it_o a_o doctrine_n he_o ever_o now_o and_o then_o fling_v in_o our_o dish_n scorn_n and_o deride_v thus_o can_v this_o man_n conscience_n sail_n by_o any_o wind_n to_o gain_v the_o shore_n and_o after_o all_o these_o shuffle_n dare_v to_o conclude_v that_o we_o in_o terminis_fw-la deny_v all_o preach_n of_o man_n because_o g._n f._n say_v cease_v from_o man_n when_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o palpable_a than_o that_o g._n f._n mean_v man_n consider_v in_o his_o own_o mere_a ability_n that_o be_v from_o such_o as_o the_o prophet_n forbid_v not_o from_o true_a prophet_n but_o our_o adversary_n the_o preach_n of_o man_n though_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o how_o can_v he_o make_v we_o to_o contradict_v ourselves_o in_o say_v man_n be_v the_o spirit_n instrument_n which_o he_o understand_v to_o be_v the_o preach_v of_o man_n by_o the_o spirit_n if_o he_o do_v not_o make_v we_o deny_v all_o preach_a though_o by_o the_o spirit_n in_o short_a i_o hope_v my_o reader_n will_v think_v it_o no_o forgery_n whatever_o my_o adversary_n may_v who_o ever_o and_o anon_o will_v hide_v his_o own_o weakness_n by_o hard_a word_n fling_v upon_o i_o to_o amuse_v the_o credulous_a reader_n to_o say_v that_o from_o our_o assert_v the_o spirit_n to_o be_v the_o only_a gospel-teacher_n of_o all_o who_o believe_v he_o conclude_v that_o we_o deny_v all_o preach_a of_o man_n though_o by_o the_o spirit_n else_o there_o will_v be_v no_o sense_n in_o his_o charge_v we_o with_o a_o contradiction_n because_o we_o say_v the_o spirit_n be_v the_o only_a teacher_n and_o yet_o that_o the_o spirit_n teach_v by_o man_n if_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v our_o cease_v from_o man_n or_o deny_v man_n ministry_n to_o be_v our_o denial_n of_o man_n preach_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n but_o he_o will_v not_o give_v over_o yet_o these_o word_n the_o spirit_n the_o only_a teacher_n he_o often_o fling_v up_o as_o word_n indigestible_a by_o his_o foul_a and_o phlegmatic_a stomach_n for_o upon_o my_o say_n that_o such_o as_o preach_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v rather_o the_o instrument_n than_o the_o teacher_n or_o man_n be_v that_o by_o which_o the_o spirit_n convey_v his_o teach_v unto_o other_o he_o reply_v thus_o reply_v pag._n 58._o so_o that_o after_o w._n p_n own_o strict_a account_n he_o allow_v their_o practice_n viz._n preach_v of_o man_n to_o give_v the_o lie_v every_o day_n to_o their_o tenet_n rejoynder_n if_o preach_n of_o man_n by_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o man_n such_o preach_n we_o shall_v always_o allow_v and_o think_v it_o no_o lie_n or_o contradiction_n to_o our_o tenet_n but_o if_o he_o that_o dictate_v a_o letter_n of_o intelligence_n be_v the_o informer_n and_o not_o the_o scribe_n the_o holy_a spirit_n must_v be_v the_o teacher_n and_o man_n but_o the_o instrument_n true_a teach_n be_v not_o only_a word_n but_o matter_n and_o that_o accompany_v with_o divine_a power_n which_o flow_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n man_n give_v they_o but_o the_o simple_a cover_v of_o expression_n and_o that_o by_o the_o spirit_n be_v appointment_n therefore_o not_o so_o proper_o the_o teach_n of_o man_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o and_o through_o man_n consequent_o not_o man_n teach_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v again_o because_o we_o charge_v he_o with_o bring_v in_o ot_fw-mi her_o teacher_n then_o the_o holy_a spirit_n contrary_a to_o express_v scripture_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o bless_a gospel_n he_o reply_v reply_v pag._n 58_o 59_o can_v you_o think_v this_o man_n worth_n dispute_v with_o who_o ramble_n and_o talk_v he_o care_v not_o how_o if_o what_o p._n say_a be_v true_a the_o exhortation_n to_o do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n feed_v the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o overseer_n be_v not_o intend_v of_o man_n teach_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n only_o exhort_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o these_o action_n and_o man_n have_v not_o have_v not_o any_o agency_n in_o teach_v rejoynder_n but_o do_v we_o ever_o say_v man_n have_v no_o share_n in_o be_v teach_v whatever_o we_o have_v say_v against_o the_o utmost_a of_o man_n natural_a ability_n consider_v separately_z from_o god_n spirit_n about_o his_o teach_v we_o never_o yet_o say_v that_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v teach_v be_v there_o no_o difference_n betwixt_o man_n teach_v without_o god_n spirit_n and_o man_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n spirit_n at_o who_o door_n then_o shall_v we_o lay_v this_o absurdity_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n exhort_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n what_o a_o idle_a non_fw-fr sequitur_fw-la be_v this_o nor_o do_v we_o deny_v all_o agency_n in_o man_n when_o manage_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o man_n may_v as_o well_o argue_v follow_v j._n faldo_n step_n against_o the_o apostle_n paul_n when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v no_o
a_o eternal_a structure_n of_o order_n and_o discipline_n a_o cover_n for_o all_o the_o wolf_n antichrist_n and_o hypocrite_n that_o have_v be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o short_a no_o position_n can_v be_v more_o destructive_a to_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o live_v in_o god_n and_o pernicious_a to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o secure_v they_o in_o their_o fancy_v relation_n to_o a_o gospel-church_n whilst_o in_o a_o un-gospel_n spirit_n estrange_v from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o true_a gospel_n and_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o through_o faith_n overcome_v the_o world_n and_o know_v a_o wash_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o a_o be_v graft_v into_o the_o true_a vine_n and_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o the_o one_o spirit_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o holiness_n to_o conclude_v after_o this_o sort_n of_o doctrine_n man_n may_v be_v member_n of_o a_o gospel-church_n and_o not_o of_o the_o true_a church_n member_n of_o a_o gospel-church_n and_o not_o good_a christian_n no_o nor_o good_a man_n itself_o indeed_o such_o a_o pastor_n as_o our_o adversary_n fuit_v such_o a_o church_n and_o such_o a_o church_n exact_o sit_v such_o a_o pastor_n from_o who_o god_n deliver_v i_o and_o all_o people_n and_o they_o from_o themselves_o i_o mean_v the_o power_n and_o prevalency_n of_o that_o pernicious_a doctrine_n and_o spirit_n that_o now_o infect_v they_o he_o proceed_v however_o with_o what_o success_n we_o shall_v see_v reply_v p._n 59_o 60._o to_o this_o of_o their_o invisible_a church_n i_o tell_v w._n p_o of_o their_o officer_n very_o suitable_a to_o a_o conceit_a nothing_o fox_n mist_n p._n 2._o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n overseer_n the_o overseer_n to_o be_v invisible_a for_o they_o see_v with_o a_o invisible_a eye_n and_o so_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o w._n perm_n meddle_v not_o with_o this_o which_o i_o dare_v say_v as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v of_o the_o quaker_n spirit_n he_o can_v tell_v the_o mean_v of_o himself_o rejoynder_n i_o have_v no_o reas●n_n to_o meddle_v with_o what_o i_o can_v not_o no●_n can_v yet_o find_v i_o entreat_v my_o reader_n to_o consider_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o his_o taunt_n in_o his_o first_o book_n he_o 〈◊〉_d i_o to_o pag._n 8._o where_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d yet_o do_v i_o not_o place_v it_o to_o the_o account_n of_o his_o treachery_n the_o best_a construction_n he_o can_v make_v of_o any_o innocent_a omission_n on_o my_o part_n in_o his_o reply_n he_o send_v i_o to_o pag._n 2._o and_o there_o i_o be_o as_o wise_a as_o i_o be_v before_o no_o such_o word_n or_o matter_n appear_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o such_o a_o adversary_n be_v i_o then_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o not_o m●ddling_v with_o what_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v or_o deserve_v i_o 〈◊〉_d better_a term_n at_o his_o hand_n who_o make_v no_o hard_a use_n of_o it_o in_o my_o answer_n or_o last_o be_v he_o not_o worthy_a of_o double_a blame_v that_o add_v to_o his_o first_o mistake_v a_o second_o and_o then_o abuse_v i_o as_o if_o on_o purpose_n i_o have_v avoid_v the_o di●●_n of_o a_o authentic_a testimony_n hitherto_o not_o produce_v but_o suppose_v g._n f._n have_v ever_o write_v any_o such_o 〈◊〉_d doubtless_o by_o invisible_a overseer_n he_o only_o mean●_n spiritual_a not_o carnal-minded_n man_n who_o by_o the_o 〈…〉_z which_o the_o true_a god_n have_v open_v may_v watch_v over_o the_o flock_n as_o to_o their_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a condition_n this_o the_o follow_a word_n make_v good_a for_o they_o see_v with_o a_o invisible_a eye_n and_o so_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o in_o the_o flesh_n in_o short_a they_o be_v not_o mere_a outward_a officer_n exercise_v a_o outward_a rule_n and_o dominion_n about_o outward_a thing_n but_o man_n qualify_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o a_o inward_a discern_v to_o oversee_a the_o spiritual_a state_n of_o the_o church_n not_o that_o their_o person_n be_v invisible_a or_o their_o action_n towards_o the_o church_n but_o that_o heavenly_a faculty_n give_v they_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o render_v they_o overseer_n or_o man_n able_a to_o see_v or_o discern_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o a_o invisible_a nature_n he_o fall_v very_o foul_a upon_o we_o in_o his_o first_o book_n because_o of_o a_o dutch-woman_n speak_v in_o one_o of_o our_o meeting_n in_o her_o own_o tongue_n charge_v upon_o we_o that_o we_o do_v orderly_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a mass_n which_o be_v to_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o which_o i_o make_v a_o large_a and_o i_o hope_v sufficient_a answer_n of_o which_o he_o report_v but_o these_o two_o or_o three_o parcel_n first_o that_o i_o call_v it_o a_o disinge●●ous_a reflection_n next_o that_o we_o do_v not_o affect_v such_o obscurity_n last_o the_o divine_a light_n power_n or_o spirit_n inward_o manifest_v be_v the_o one_o tongue_n to_o the_o child_n of_o light_n this_o he_o call_v foolish_a antiscriptural_a ridicu●us_a but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o i_o owe_v it_o to_o he_o alone_o who_o have_v ●ade_v so_o foolish_a and_o false_a a_o citation_n of_o my_o word_n howbeit_o he_o say_v nothing_o to_o what_o he_o have_v cite_v his_o 〈◊〉_d word_n set_v aside_o his_o reflection_n be_v disinge●ous_a because_o such_o a_o practice_n be_v not_o common_a or_o usual●ith_v ●ith_z we_o nay_o that_o be_v accidental_a therefore_o to_o ●arge_v it_o upon_o we_o as_o conformable_a to_o the_o orderliness_n of_o the_o popish_a mass_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n with_o we_o to_o teach_v as_o with_o romanist_n to_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n be_v more_o than_o disingenuous_a for_o it_o be_v false_a and_o malicious_a be_v throw_v out_o by_o he_o on_o purpose_n to_o infame_v and_o disgrace_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o affect_v such_o obscurity_n i_o affirm_v and_o our_o practice_n evidence_v it_o be_v rather_o jeer_v for_o our_o too_o much_o rusticity_n and_o plainness_n and_o our_o frequent_a decry_v of_o dark_a school-phrase_n and_o turn_v rhetoric_n by_o which_o great_a writer_n wrap_v up_o their_o matter_n from_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o vulgar_a that_o the_o divine_a light_n power_n or_o spirit_n inward_o manifest_v be_v none_o of_o my_o word_n i_o will_v report_v my_o answer_n both_o more_o large_o and_o true_o and_o leave_v it_o with_o the_o conscience_n of_o my_o reader_n thus_o the_o single_a power_n of_o the_o almighty_a may_v both_o strike_v astonishment_n and_o give_v refreshment_n where_o the_o word_n utter_v be_v not_o always_o understand_v since_o he_o frequent_o do_v both_o without_o they_o understanding_n and_o inward_a sense_n be_v two_o thing_n for_o the_o devil_n may_v speak_v the_o best_a word_n in_o the_o bible_n and_o be_v a_o undiscovered_a devil_n still_o except_o by_o this_o divine_a light_n power_n and_o spirit_n he_o be_v inward_o manifest_v consequent_o a_o right_a sense_n may_v be_v have_v where_o word_n may_v not_o be_v understand_v which_o sense_n be_v the_o one_o tongue_n to_o the_o child_n of_o light_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o only_o decry_v all_o design_a obscurity_n by_o pray_v and_o preach_v in_o unknown_a language_n but_o with_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o choose_v rather_o by_o far_o to_o speak_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n as_o well_o as_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o spirit_n nor_o do_v ever_o any_o quaker_n yet_o pretend_v to_o be_v move_v to_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a language_n whilst_o he_o be_v master_n of_o that_o which_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o people_n since_o than_o we_o do_v not_o affect_v obscurity_n the_o case_n of_o the_o papist_n who_o pray_v in_o latin_a rather_o than_o in_o their_o native_a or_o vulgar_a tongue_n he_o be_v very_o disingenuous_a in_o that_o reflection_n but_o in_o reply_n to_o all_o this_o he_o only_o give_v we_o thus_o much_o reply_v pag._n 60._o sure_o i_o be_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o who_o the_o apostle_n paul_n be_v direct_v be_v not_o the_o quaker_n spirit_n nor_o its_o doctrine_n the_o same_o with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o case_n i_o shall_v be_v to_o he_o that_o speak_v a_o barbarian_a and_o he_o that_o speak_v shall_v be_v a_o barbarian_a to_o i_o i_o cor._n 14._o 11._o rejoynder_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v by_o what_o mean_v j._n faldo_n have_v that_o discern_v between_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o quaker_n be_v it_o because_o the_o dutch-woman_n speak_v in_o a_o english_a meeting_n do_v we_o hold_v teach_v or_o practise_v any_o such_o thing_n
beside_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o though_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n may_v render_v he_o as_o a_o barbarian_a to_o he_o that_o understand_v he_o not_o will_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v a_o barbarian_a or_o that_o he_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o he_o by_o no_o mean_n for_o he_o may_v speak_v mystery_n in_o the_o spirit_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n vers_fw-la 2._o man_n may_v also_o pray_v in_o the_o spirit_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n vers_fw-la 14._o a_o man_n may_v bless_v praise_v and_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n vers_fw-la 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o nay_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o such_o a_o one_o very_o thou_o give_v thanks_o well_o now_o how_o all_o this_o can_v be_v and_o yet_o that_o such_o a_o person_n shall_v be_v act_v by_o another_o spirit_n than_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostle_n for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o can_v see_v in_o short_a the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o tongue_n be_v for_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o vers_n 22._o but_o our_o friend_n speak_v among_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o though_o they_o do_v not_o all_o know_v what_o her_o bare_a word_n import_v yet_o they_o may_v be_v and_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o divine_a power_n in_o which_o she_o speak_v which_o give_v a_o general_a refreshment_n unto_o they_o of_o that_o assembly_n that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o it_o otherwise_o all_o fellowship_n in_o spirit_n must_v be_v renounce_v but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v any_o thing_n j._n f_n froth_n will_v have_v it_o because_o its_o unknown_a to_o his_o thick_a and_o carnal_a understanding_n however_o the_o want_n of_o a_o know_a tongue_n may_v render_v one_o less_o profitable_a but_o not_o less_o a_o christian_n for_o a_o time_n shall_v come_v the_o same_o apostle_n say_v that_o tongue_n shall_v cease_v but_o never_o that_o christianity_n or_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n shall_v cease_v therefore_o to_o re●ute_v all_o that_o can_v speak_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n antichristian_a or_o of_o another_o spirit_n than_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v unworthy_a of_o any_o man_n that_o make_v any_o the_o least_o pretence_n to_o the_o christian-religion_n indeed_o to_o common_a sense_n one_o passage_n more_o than_o we_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n reply_v p._n 60._o to_o my_o reflection_n upon_o their_o affirm_v she_o speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n because_o they_o all_o find_a re●reshings_n viz._n so_o have_v child_n many_o a_o time_n of_o puppet-play_n w._n p._n call_v i_o all_o to_o nought_o especial_o because_o i_o can_v not_o as_o he_o say_v but_o think_v it_o mean_v by_o refresh_n what_o come_v from_o god_n but_o let_v not_o penn_n think_v we_o take_v ourselves_o bind_v to_o reverence_v such_o foolery_n rejoynder_n that_o it_o be_v a_o reflection_n he_o confess_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o unseemly_a one_o i_o refer_v to_o every_o man_n of_o conscience_n i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o oblige_v j._n faldo_n to_o believe_v what_o we_o say_v but_o reprove_v his_o profane_a scoff_v at_o what_o we_o believe_v i_o will_v have_v so_o much_o regard_n to_o any_o people_n serious_o profess_v religion_n as_o not_o to_o explain_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o their_o refreshment_n by_o the_o pleasure_n some_o irreligious_a people_n take_v at_o the_o vain_a and_o frothy_a sport_n of_o puppet-play_n and_o the_o worst_a word_n i_o give_v he_o and_o his_o comparison_n be_v profaneness_n further_o add_v that_o it_o outdo_v ben._n johnson_n alchemist_n a_o play_n make_v in_o scorn_n of_o puritan_n which_o all_o good_a man_n detest_v and_o himself_o die_v abhor_v but_o why_o may_v not_o people_n be_v refresh_v in_o their_o soul_n from_o that_o divine_a power_n which_o may_v attend_v a_o person_n speak_v in_o a_o language_n unknown_a suppose_v a_o godly_a assembly_n of_o english_a people_n and_o a_o english_a preacher_n endue_v with_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o there_o happen_v into_o such_o a_o congregation_n some_o serious_a foreigner_n of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v it_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o notwithstanding_o their_o ignorance_n of_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n speak_v they_o may_v have_v a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a sense_n of_o the_o zeal_n power_n and_o spirit_n that_o eminent_o attend_v the_o preacher_n if_o it_o be_v how_o much_o more_o ridiculous_a be_v it_o then_o for_o people_n to_o say_v it_o glad_v their_o heart_n to_o see_v such_o a_o godly_a countenance_n or_o to_o hear_v the_o voice_n or_o sound_n of_o this_o or_o the_o other_o good_a man_n though_o they_o have_v no_o distinct_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n i_o be_o in_o this_o case_n a_o more_o allowable_a witness_n then_o j._n faldo_n who_o have_v see_v sinner_n strike_v the_o weak_a strengthen_v and_o the_o strong_a confirm_v at_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n declare_v in_o a_o language_n they_o can_v not_o understand_v the_o divine_a power_n and_o virtue_n go_v forth_o and_o they_o be_v judge_v comfort_v or_o confirm_v in_o themselves_o and_o they_o no_o fool_n though_o j._n faldo_n call_v such_o thing_n foolery_n and_o pupppet-playes_a to_o deny_v this_o be_v to_o overthrow_v spiritual_a fellowship_n in_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o and_o to_o centre_n in_o this_o atheistical_a notion_n that_o all_o our_o knowledge_n of_o god_n come_v in_o by_o our_o carnal_a eye_n and_o ear_n that_o be_v what_o other_o have_v write_v and_o what_o other_o have_v tell_v i_o that_o i_o believe_v and_o therefore_o i_o believe_v and_o not_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o infallible_a spirit_n of_o god_n in_o myself_o which_o credulity_n render_v he_o more_o like_a rome_n in_o that_o wherein_o she_o be_v condemnable_a than_o any_o thing_n he_o can_v true_o suggest_v of_o we_o but_o this_o gross_a doctrine_n be_v so_o obvious_o teach_v by_o our_o adversary_n in_o his_o first_o book_n second_o part_n p._n 91._o we_o have_v the_o less_o reason_n to_o wonder_v that_o foolery_n and_o puppet-plays_a be_v the_o best_a word_n he_o can_v bestow_v upon_o the_o divine_a consolation_n refreshment_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n within_o men._n we_o will_v add_v these_o testimony_n as_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n w._n tindal_n in_o his_o work_n p._n 250._o church_n the_o elect_n in_o who_o heart_n god_n have_v write_v his_o law_n with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o give_v they_o a_o feel_a faith_n of_o the_o mercy_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n d._n barns_n work_n p._n 244._o the_o holy_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o congregation_n that_o be_v sanctify_v in_o spirit_n redeem_v with_o christ_n blood_n and_o stick_v fast_o and_o sure_a alone_o to_o the_o promise_n that_o he_o make_v therein_o so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o no_o exterior_a thing_n but_o invisible_a from_o carnal_a eye_n i_o say_v not_o that_o they_o be_v invisible_a that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o holy_a church_n in_o herself_o be_v invisible_a as_o faith_n be_v and_o her_o pureness_n and_o cleanness_n be_v before_o christ_n only_o and_o not_o before_o the_o world_n for_o the_o world_n have_v no_o judgement_n nor_o knowledge_n of_o she_o but_o all_o her_o honour_n and_o cleanness_n be_v before_o christ_n sure_a and_o fast_o peter_n martyr_n four_o part_n of_o common_a place_n cap._n 1_o pag._n 1._o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o greek_a verse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o call_v for_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n thereof_o which_o come_v not_o thereunto_o by_o the_o call_v of_o god_n and_o to_o define_v it_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o company_n of_o believer_n and_o regenerate_a person_n who_o god_n gather_v together_o in_o christ_n by_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v every_o where_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o have_v he_o for_o their_o head_n of_o who_o by_o the_o joint_n and_o sinew_n they_o take_v their_o grow_v and_o attain_v unto_o life_n by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n christoph_n goad_n p._n 37._o it_o be_v a_o sad_a thing_n that_o there_o be_v church_n that_o think_v it_o be_v enough_o there_o be_v a_o form_n of_o godliness_n that_o we_o be_v in_o church-fellowship_n and_o so_o lie_v down_o together_o and_o sleep_v i_o have_v no_o quarrel_n with_o church_n or_o any_o form_n but_o such_o as_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o here_o be_v all_o asleep_a asleep_a in_o death_n t._n collier_n work_n p._n 42._o the_o church_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o spiritual_a seed_n the_o seed_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n t._n collier_n p._n 102._o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n kingdom_n be_v a_o people_n saint_n
sermon_n upon_o job_n 32._o 8._o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o dwell_v in_o man_n etc._n etc._n man_n say_v he_o can_v discern_v any_o whit_n of_o god_n secret_a until_o he_o be_v enlighten_v we_o can_v never_o by_o our_o will_n reach_v so_o high_a as_o to_o know_v god_n we_o must_v put_v our_o reason_n from_o we_o and_o renounce_v it_o utter_o what_o say_v j._n faldo_n to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o his_o father_n calvin_n again_o if_o we_o will_v have_v our_o lord_n to_o fill_v we_o with_o his_o wisdom_n it_o behove_v we_o to_o become_v fool_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o must_v not_o bring_v any_o thing_n of_o our_o own_o for_o that_o be_v the_o shut_n of_o the_o door_n against_o god_n h._n bullenger_n 4._o decad._n serm._n 5._o p._n 665._o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n pray_v in_o this_o world_n be_v enlighten_v and_o kindle_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n groan_v and_o make_v intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n w._n perkins_n the_o english_a calvin_n in_o the_o same_o man_n thought_n p._n 336._o 21._o write_v thus_o all_o exercise_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n the_o inward_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v of_o themselves_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n whereas_o our_o word_n and_o deed_n be_v not_o simple_o but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v find_v in_o the_o renew_a motion_n of_o the_o heart_n gualt_n cradok_v upon_o ephes_n 3._o p._n 169._o that_o you_o may_v see_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o power_n what_o a_o world_n of_o prayer_n do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n put_v into_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o be_v never_o able_a to_o utter_v with_o thy_o mouth_n all_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n can_v make_v one_o spiritual_a petition_n we_o may_v make_v form_n of_o prayer_n but_o now_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o know_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n that_o make_v prayer_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o he_o spirit_n pray_v with_o sigh_v and_o groan_v unutterable_o i_o speak_v to_o they_o that_o know_v the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o the_o lord_n shall_v only_o hear_v the_o prayer_n thou_o make_v with_o thy_o mouth_n thou_o will_v be_v a_o poor_a man_n but_o the_o lord_n respect_v the_o prayer_n of_o thy_o heart_n w._n dell._n serm._n christ_n spirit_n etc._n etc._n p._n 35._o when_o god_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o give_v we_o the_o spirit_n he_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n to_o ask_v it_o yea_o god_n give_v we_o the_o spirit_n that_o by_o it_o we_o may_v ask_v the_o spirit_n see_v no_o man_n can_v ask_v the_o spirit_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n act_v 1._o 14._o dr._n j._n everad_n the_o great_a spiritual_a separatist_n in_o king_n james_n and_o charles_n the_o fir_v time_n be_v assure_v whatever_o prayer_n whatever_o sigh_n whatever_o groan_v thou_o put_v up_o to_o he_o he_o loathe_v all_o but_o what_o his_o son_n make_v but_o all_o his_o request_n be_v hear_v and_o grant_v pag._n 225_o be_v sure_o that_o your_o prayer_n be_v such_o as_o become_v god_n ear_n to_o hear_v for_o all_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o flesh_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v displease_v to_o god_n pag._n 243._o not_o the_o best_a duty_n you_o can_v perform_v will_v please_v he_o except_o they_o be_v salt_v and_o season_v by_o his_o own_o son_n p._n 9_o never_o think_v that_o all_o your_o prayer_n your_o tear_n your_o alm_n etc._n etc._n please_v he_o but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v his_o son_n be_v own_o action_n and_o work_n in_o you_o p._n 355._o but_o know_v he_o god_n regard_v none_o of_o these_o prayer_n but_o when_o his_o son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v when_o he_o pray_v he_o hear_v he_o always_o but_o if_o any_o other_o pray_v he_o regard_v not_o p._n 438._o 442._o again_o it_o must_v be_v his_o son_n work_n in_o we_o else_o he_o loathe_v all_o even_o the_o best_a of_o the_o sacrifice_n if_o it_o be_v not_o jesus_n christ_n in_o we_o that_o do_v all_o viz._n that_o love_v god_n and_o fear_v god_n and_o obey_v god_n and_o believe_v in_o god_n etc._n etc._n his_o father_n regard_v it_o not_o but_o what_o think_v j._n faldo_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n j._n calvin_n w._n perkins_n h._n bullenger_n gu._n cradok_v be_v unquestionable_a w._n dell_n master_n of_o cajus_n college_n in_o late_a time_n and_o for_o dr._n j._n everad_n his_o work_n be_v licence_v decemb._n 6._o 1652_o by_o no_o less_o man_n then_o j._n caril_n and_o approve_v by_o tho_n brook_n and_o mat._n parker_n all_o three_o independent_a pastor_n the_o first_o late_o decease_v the_o other_o two_o not_o many_o day_n ago_o live_v who_o i_o hope_v be_v able_a to_o justify_v their_o kindness_n to_o that_o notable_a and_o doubtless_o very_o religious_a man._n perhaps_o the_o truth_n may_v find_v better_a quarter_n for_o these_o great_a author_n sake_n therefore_o i_o bring_v they_o though_o indeed_o it_o be_v true_o lamentable_a that_o the_o professor_n of_o our_o age_n will_v not_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n they_o hold_v in_o great_a admiration_n when_o they_o meet_v with_o they_o in_o the_o poor_a quaker_n write_n but_o instead_o of_o acknowledge_v miseraby_n browbeat_a they_o with_o oppobrious_a language_n thereby_o bring_v the_o great_a truth_n into_o suspicion_n with_o the_o vulgar_a but_o oh_o lord_n god_n of_o truth_n this_o have_v be_v the_o portion_n of_o thy_o people_n and_o lot_z of_o thy_o child_n who_o thou_o have_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o world_n in_o all_o age_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o who_o boast_v themselves_o in_o other_o man_n labour_n and_o have_v a_o name_n to_o live_v but_o be_v dead_a to_o that_o life_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v live_v to_o thou_o they_o seem_v to_o honour_v the_o prophet_n and_o garnish_v the_o sepulcher_n of_o thy_o servant_n that_o be_v at_o rest_n but_o have_v err_v from_o the_o conduct_n of_o thy_o spirit_n and_o resist_v the_o holy_a motion_n of_o it_o they_o be_v become_v the_o great_a persecutor_n resister_n and_o vilifier_n of_o thy_o holy_a live_a pure_a and_o spiritual_a way_n oh_o lord_n god_n arise_v for_o thy_o great_a name_n sake_n seize_v upon_o their_o conscience_n by_o thy_o invisible_a word_n of_o power_n lay_v judgement_n to_o the_o line_n and_o righteousness_n to_o the_o plummet_n dash_v their_o fine_a carve_a image_n in_o piece_n and_o let_v thy_o consume_a fire_n take_v hold_v on_o their_o chaff_n and_o stubble_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o thy_o righteous_a balance_n that_o they_o may_v see_v they_o and_o their_o religion_n to_o be_v light_a than_o vanity_n that_o they_o may_v witness_v thy_o mighty_a work_n of_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n before_o they_o depart_v hence_o and_o be_v never_o see_v more_o through_o jesus_n christ_n the_o alone_a advocate_n and_o mediator_n intercessor_n redeemer_n and_o saviour_n of_o all_o thy_o dear_a child_n who_o have_v believe_v in_o his_o heavenly_a appearance_n by_o who_o be_v everlasting_a honour_n glory_n and_o dominion_n amen_n chap._n vi_o of_o positive_a ordinance_n as_o our_o adversary_n call_v they_o to_o wit_n baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n he_o introduce_v his_o discourse_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o ordinance_n distinguish_v they_o by_o natural_a and_o positive_a he_o except_v against_o my_o report_n of_o one_o part_n of_o his_o doctrine_n call_v it_o by_o no_o mild_a a_o name_n then_o forgery_n i_o will_v give_v both_o our_o quotation_n that_o my_o reader_n may_v the_o better_o see_v what_o ground_n he_o have_v for_o such_o severe_a reflection_n i_o cite_v he_o thus_o the_o ordinance_n hitherto_o consider_v be_v call_v moral_a from_o their_o natural_a obligation_n although_o respect_v their_o substance_n they_o deserve_v a_o more_o evangelical_n denomination_n without_o which_o we_o can_v call_v they_o christian_a ordinance_n this_o he_o call_v forge_v corupt_v his_o word_n and_o that_o he_o that_o have_v the_o conscience_n to_o deal_v with_o such_o a_o adversary_n may_v make_v he_o say_v what_o he_o list_v reply_v p._n 56._o i_o will_v now_o puncual_o transcribe_v his_o word_n as_o himself_o have_v quote_v they_o and_o a_o plain_a self-defeat_a will_v lie_v at_o the_o bottom_n of_o all_o this_o displeasure_n reply_v p._n 66._o my_o word_n be_v these_o to_o a_o letter_n the_o ordinance_n i_o have_v hitherto_o consider_v be_v call_v moral_a from_o their_o natural_a obligation_n although_o that_o substantial_a and_o essential_a part_n and_o qualification_n of_o they_o their_o respect_n to_o a_o mediator_n will_v require_v a_o denomination_n more_o evangelical_n and_o without_o which_o we_o can_v call_v they_o gospel_n or_o christian_a ordinance_n let_v vv._n p._n make_v the_o best_a advantage_n for_o his_o cause_n these_o word_n will_v afford_v he_o and_o spare_v not_o rejoynder_n have_v
to_o be_v the_o effect_n or_o purchase_v of_o inward_a righteousness_n and_o holiness_n for_o its_o impossible_a but_o the_o free_a love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n yet_o without_o the_o holy_a sanctify_a or_o regenerate_v work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n whereby_o to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n 11._o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o have_v access_n into_o god_n tabernable_a and_o holy_a hill_n much_o less_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o and_o indeed_o as_o true_a repentance_n which_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o the_o work_n of_o sanctfication_n open_v the_o way_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v past_a which_o i_o call_v the_o first_o part_n of_o justification_n so_o be_v regeneration_n or_o sanctification_n throughout_o in_o body_n soul_n and_o spirit_n as_o well_o the_o complete_n of_o justification_n as_o sanctification_n consequent_o it_o be_v that_o second_o part_n of_o justification_n because_o it_o be_v a_o make_v man_n just_a by_o nature_n who_o be_v before_o just_o but_o by_o imputation_n that_o be_v he_o that_o be_v account_v just_a by_o not_o have_v sin_n impute_v through_o repentance_n and_o faith_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n declare_v in_o and_o by_o christ_n be_v now_o inward_o make_v more_o just_a because_o make_v holy_a as_o god_n be_v holy_a levit._n 20._o 7._o perfect_a as_o his_o heavenly_a father_n be_v perfect_a mat._n 5._o 48._o righteous_a even_o as_o god_n be_v righteous_a 1_o john_n 3._o 7._o through_o the_o effectual_a work_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v two_o scripture_n which_o prove_v this_o the_o one_o be_v 1_o cor._n 1._o 30._o but_o of_o he_o be_v you_o in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o of_o god_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n where_o the_o word_n justification_n be_v leave_v out_o and_o yet_o the_o thing_n justification_n doubtless_o include_v and_o employ_v the_o other_o be_v rom._n 8._o 30._o moreover_o who_o he_o do_v predestinate_a they_o he_o also_o call_v and_o who_o he_o call_v they_o he_o also_o justify_v and_o who_o he_o justify_v they_o he_o also_o glorify_v where_o sanctification_n be_v leave_v out_o yet_o without_o dispute_n the_o word_n justification_n include_v it_o nor_o be_v we_o alone_o in_o this_o judgement_n since_o both_o ancient_n and_o modern_a writer_n avouch_v the_o same_o irenaeus_n adv_n heres_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 30._o irenaeus_n disciple_n to_o polycarpus_n who_o be_v disciple_n to_o john_n the_o divine_a apostle_n say_v justiantem_fw-la patres_fw-la virtute_fw-la decalogi_fw-la conscriptam_fw-la habentes_fw-la in_o cordibus_fw-la s●is_fw-la legem_fw-la the_o patriarch_n say_v he_o be_v justify_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n again_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o he_o speak_v of_o many_o nation_n of_o the_o barbarian_n of_o who_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n have_v salvation_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n without_o paper_n or_o ink._n clemens_n alexandrinus_n strom._n lib._n 7._o and_o say_v clemens_n alexandrinus_n who_o live_v in_o the_o same_o century_n you_o be_v make_v of_o he_o to_o be_v righteous_a as_o he_o be_v righteous_a and_o leaven_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n orig._n epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n l._n 4._o c._n 4._o and_o origen_n also_o tell_v we_o therefore_o christ_n justify_v they_o only_o who_o have_v betake_v themselves_o to_o a_o new_a life_n by_o the_o example_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o have_v cast_v away_o the_o old_a garment_n of_o unrighteousness_n and_o iniquity_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o death_n thus_o far_o of_o father_n of_o the_o reformer_n from_o popery_n h._n bullenger_n decad._n 1_o serm._n 6._o the_o justif_a h._n bullenger_n thus_o to_o justify_v signify_v to_o remit_v offence_n that_o be_v as_o i_o distinguish_v the_o first_o part_n but_o hear_v what_o follow_v to_o cleanse_v to_o sanctify_v and_o to_o give_v utterance_n of_o life_n everlasting_a again_o justification_n be_v take_v in_o this_o present_a treatise_n for_o the_o absolution_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o sanctification_n and_o adoption_n into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n d._n barns_n work_n p._n 243_o 244_o 245._o to_o he_o i_o will_v add_v d._n barnes_n burn_v in_o henry_n the_o eighth_n day_n who_o in_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o true_a church_n against_o the_o romish_a bishop_n assert_n in_o full_a and_o pathetical_a expression_n that_o what_o give_v her_o acceptance_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v she_o be_v present_v to_o god_n by_o christ_n her_o head_n without_o spot_n through_o the_o wash_v of_o regeneration_n b._n downam_n of_o justif_a chap._n 1._o so_o bishop_n downam_n of_o justification_n distinguish_v and_o determine_v this_o point_n almost_o in_o the_o very_a same_o term_n i_o will_v conclude_v with_o some_o passage_n out_o of_o j._n spirgg_n book_n entitle_v a_o testimony_n to_o a_o approach_v glory_n j._n sprig_n test_n p._n 81_o 82_o 83_o 84_o 85_o 88_o 89._o we_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v after_o christ_n that_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o if_o you_o only_o know_v christ_n die_v and_o rise_v without_o you_o it_o will_v profit_v you_o nothing_o except_o you_o have_v he_o die_v and_o rise_v within_o you_o error_n in_o this_o be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o dead_a faith_n whereof_o the_o world_n be_v full_a paul_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o hear_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n do_v make_v they_o free_a no_o there_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n jesus_n here_o be_v that_o which_o put_v a_o difference_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bring_v the_o covenant_n to_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o poor_a creature_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n and_o sonship_n reveal_v we_o god_n as_o our_o father_n reveal_v god_n in_o union_n with_o we_o our_o righteousness_n and_o our_o strength_n he_o do_v indeed_o seal_v we_o to_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n he_o set_v apart_o christ_n sheep_n this_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o other_o so_o that_o if_o you_o lay_v your_o salvation_n upon_o a_o christ_n historical_a christ_n you_o will_v be_v deceive_v if_o you_o will_v have_v that_o in_o which_o you_o may_v confide_v you_o must_v have_v christ_n reveal_v in_o you_o in_o the_o spirit_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o i_o desire_v to_o commend_v unto_o you_o that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v we_o be_v not_o sanctify_v by_o christ_n die_v by_o christ_n suffering_n in_o the_o flesh_n only_o that_o be_v not_o the_o complete_a ministration_n of_o our_o salvation_n there_o indeed_o we_o see_v our_o salvation_n as_o in_o a_o glass_n and_o it_o be_v transact_v as_o in_o a_o figure_n as_o in_o the_o history_n but_o then_o be_v we_o actual_o sanctify_v where_o as_o god_n do_v send_v that_o same_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n into_o our_o heart_n reveal_v unto_o we_o the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n and_o reveal_v unto_o we_o our_o reconciliation_n that_o reconciliation_n that_o be_v hold_v forth_o to_o we_o on_o the_o cross_n but_o which_o be_v dispense_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o be_v offer_v up_o upon_o the_o cross_n as_o christ_n be_v all_o these_o person_n put_v great_a value_n upon_o the_o inward_a work_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o plain_o determine_v sanctification_n and_o justification_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o if_o any_o one_o have_v the_o preference_n the_o scripture_n itself_o give_v it_o to_o sanctification_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 11._o know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o unrighteous_a shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o deceive_v neither_o fornicator_n nor_o idolater_n nor_o adulterer_n nor_o effeminate_a nor_o abuser_n of_o themselves_o with_o mankind_n nor_o thief_n nor_o covetous_a nor_o drunkard_n nor_o reviler_n nor_o extortioner_n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n cor._n h._n grotius_n expound_v the_o word_n sanctify_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d accepistis_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la you_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o word_n justify_v majores_fw-la quotidie_fw-la in_o justitia_fw-la fecistis_fw-la progressus_fw-la you_o have_v make_v daily_o great_a progress_n in_o righteousness_n and_o d._n hammond_n in_o his_o annotation_n upon_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n interpret_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o righteousness_n a_o be_v first_o sanctify_v and_o then_o justify_v to_o end_v this_o chapter_n serious_a reader_n it_o be_v our_o faith_n that_o christ_n to_o conform_v we_o to_o his_o heavenly_a image_n who_o have_v
more_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o dignity_n than_o the_o flesh_n christ_n take_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n for_o he_o be_v make_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o second_o covenant_n be_v without_o beginning_n of_o day_n or_o end_n of_o life_n four_o because_o christ_n himself_o magnify_v the_o spirit_n above_o the_o flesh_n they_o look_v not_o far_o than_o his_o body_n or_o flesh_n as_o it_o be_v visible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o he_o appoint_v they_o to_o look_v far_o yea_o to_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n spiritual_o which_o be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o drink_v indeed_o be_v that_o live_a bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n that_o who_o eat_v thereof_o shall_v live_v forever_o joh._n 6._o 48_o to_o 58_o &_o 63._o and_o those_o that_o see_v not_o through_o and_o beyond_o that_o visible_a body_n of_o flesh_n which_o be_v the_o veil_n which_o the_o eternal_a word_n take_v to_o trasact_v and_o represent_v as_o in_o a_o common_a person_n that_o which_o every_o child_n of_o god_n ought_v measurable_o to_o witness_v in_o his_o own_o particular_a unto_o the_o behold_n and_o partake_v of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n power_n and_o righteousness_n that_o dwell_v therein_o which_o be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o drink_v indeed_o unto_o every_o hungry_a and_o thirsty_a soul_n they_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o the_o chief_a cornerstone_n that_o be_v elect_a and_o precious_a but_o be_v carnal_a not_o know_v the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o god_n mat._n 22._o 29._o five_o christ_n jesus_n lay_v far_o more_o weight_n upon_o the_o come_v of_o the_o comforter_n or_o himself_o in_o his_o second_o and_o spiritual_a appearance_n in_o they_o among_o who_o he_o bodily_a converse_v then_o upon_o the_o continuance_n of_o his_o bodily_a presence_n joh._n 16._o 7._o intimate_v that_o he_o intend_v a_o more_o spiritual_a communion_n with_o they_o they_o in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o they_o even_o as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o father_n &_o his_o father_n in_o he_o chap._n 17_o 21_o 23._o a_o fellowship_n beyond_o what_o they_o have_v already_o know_v how_o can_v it_o otherwise_o have_v be_v expedient_a as_o the_o text_n express_v it_o if_o the_o change_n from_o his_o visible_a to_o invisible_a presence_n have_v not_o be_v both_o more_o glorious_a and_o advantageous_a his_o disciple_n believe_v he_o for_o the_o word_n he_o speak_v chap._n 16._o 30._o but_o ver_fw-la 31._o 32._o jesus_n answer_v they_o do_v you_o now_o believe_v behold_v the_o hour_n come_v yea_o be_v now_o come_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v scatter_v every_o man_n to_o his_o own_o as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o shall_v then_o know_v i_o and_o believe_v in_o i_o upon_o a_o more_o clear_a and_o certain_a ground_n when_o you_o shall_v have_v receive_v thus_o of_o my_o fullness_n and_o grace_n for_o grace_n joh._n 1._o 16._o and_o be_v scatter_v to_o it_o which_o be_v hard_o to_o be_v do_v while_o i_o stay_v in_o this_o capacity_n among_o you_o therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o i_o go_v away_o as_o to_o my_o bodily_a presence_n joh._n 16._o 7._o on_o which_o you_o have_v such_o great_a dependence_n but_o i_o christ_n will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_a i_o will_v come_v a_o comforter_n unto_o you_o chap._n 14._o 3_o 18_o 19_o 20._o for_o lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 28._o 20._o this_o be_v the_o christ_n of_o god_n six_o because_o the_o apostle_n paul_n desire_v not_o thence_o forth_o to_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n but_o spiritual_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o himself_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 16._o gal._n 1._o 15_o 16._o and_o as_o the_o apostle_n count_v all_o other_o knowledge_n dross_n &_o dung_n to_o that_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n reveal_v in_o he_o so_o be_v he_o not_o content_v that_o the_o galatian_n shall_v rest_v in_o a_o fleshly_a knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o travel_v in_o birth_n with_o they_o like_o a_o faithful_a witness_n of_o the_o inward_a work_n of_o god_n a_o second_o time_n until_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o they_o gal._n 4._o 19_o who_o doubtless_o be_v the_o true_a christ_n seven_o because_o that_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o veil_n but_o he_o himself_o be_v within_o the_o veil_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a of_o holy_a whereinto_o christ_n jesus_n our_o high_a priest_n have_v enter_v hebr._n 10._o 20_o 21._o and_o as_o he_o descend_v into_o and_o past_a through_o a_o suffer_a state_n in_o his_o fleshly_a appearance_n 8._o and_o return_v into_o that_o state_n of_o immortality_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n from_o whence_o he_o humble_v himself_o which_o be_v and_o be_v the_o holy_a of_o holy_a than_o obscure_v or_o hide_v by_o his_o flesh_n or_o body_n the_o veil_n while_o in_o the_o world_n so_o must_v all_o know_v a_o death_n to_o their_o fleshly_a way_n and_o religion_n yea_o their_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n himself_o after_o the_o flesh_n or_o they_o stick_v in_o the_o veil_n and_o never_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o holy_a nor_o come_v to_o know_v he_o in_o any_o spiritual_a relation_n as_o their_o high_a and_o holy_a priest_n that_o abide_v therein_o eight_o because_o that_o christ_n live_v and_o dwell_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o child_n joh._n 14._o 23._o chap._n 15._o 5._o chap._n 17._o 21._o coloss_n 1._o 27._o which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o outward_a body_n of_o christ_n therefore_o i_o can_v by_o any_o mean_n believe_v that_o the_o mere_a visible_a flesh_n and_o body_n constitute_v christ_n though_o i_o shall_v confess_v that_o respect_v the_o administration_n and_o the_o service_n of_o that_o holy_a body_n fit_v and_o qualify_v of_o god_n as_o a_o instrument_n to_o usher_v introduce_v and_o bring_v it_o forth_o into_o the_o world_n it_o may_v very_o well_o have_v attribute_v to_o it_o the_o name_n christ_n be_v so_o near_o relate_v but_o rather_o that_o divine_a nature_n wisdom_n power_n righteousness_n grace_n and_o truth_n of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o fullness_n who_o transcend_v glory_n be_v veil_v by_o that_o body_n of_o flesh_n he_o wear_v and_o be_v only_o let_v forth_o in_o that_o day_n as_o any_o be_v capable_a of_o behold_v and_o receive_v it_o which_o dwell_v therein_o and_o those_o who_o at_o this_o day_n do_v seed_n upon_o the_o history_n of_o the_o bodily_a appearance_n yet_o honourable_a in_o its_o place_n &_o know_v not_o a_o break_n through_o the_o veil_n by_o witness_v a_o measure_n of_o the_o same_o divine_a wisdom_n power_n righteousness_n grace_n &_o truth_n reveal_v and_o bear_v forth_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v but_o carnal_a and_o fleshly_a christian_n be_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o formation_n of_o the_o christ_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o which_o be_v the_o open_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o christ_n abide_v the_o hope_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o people_n this_o distinction_n friendly_a reader_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o body_n be_v very_o unpleasant_a to_o i_o but_o i_o be_o thrust_v into_o it_o by_o the_o loud_a clamour_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o we_o &_o as_o too_o short_a he_o rest_v our_o word_n so_o as_o to_o rebuke_v his_o fond_a absurdity_n i_o hope_v sufficient_o detect_v and_o which_o be_v more_o in_o my_o eye_n and_o indeed_o lay_v hard_a upon_o my_o spirit_n to_o oppose_v and_o defeat_v his_o carnal_a objection_n against_o the_o glorious_a christ_n of_o god_n for_o by_o his_o vehement_a outcry_n at_o we_o as_o person_n deny_v the_o christ_n of_o god_n because_o we_o rather_o choose_v to_o call_v that_o body_n that_o be_v prepare_v of_o god_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o christ_n himself_o to_o beat_v people_n off_o at_o once_o from_o harken_v after_o our_o doctrine_n of_o the_o spiritual_a second_o come_v of_o christ_n into_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n for_o if_o his_o doctrine_n be_v true_a christ_n do_v not_o real_o dwell_v in_o his_o child_n thereby_o deprive_v the_o child_n of_o man_n from_o the_o most_o heavenly_a enjoyment_n and_o privilege_n god_n have_v lay_v up_o for_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o for_o i_o be_o bold_a to_o affirm_v and_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_a true_a and_o wise_a god_n the_o true_a church_n be_v become_v christ_n body_n and_o he_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n power_n and_o righteousness_n live_v reign_n and_o put_v forth_o himself_o in_o and_o by_o she_o and_o that_o all_o those_o who_o come_v not_o thus_o to_o experience_n the_o christ_n of_o god_n to_o dwell_v in_o they_o their_o king_n prophet_n and_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v without_o beginning_n of_o day_n and_o end_v of_o life_n they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n christ_n do_v stick_v in_o the_o
how_o can_v he_o conclude_v the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n yet_o so_o he_o conclude_v per_fw-la fas_fw-la per_fw-la nefas_fw-la what_o can_v be_v say_v to_o a_o man_n of_o this_o hardy_a stamp_n who_o neither_o logic_n reason_n nor_o modesty_n can_v bound_v yet_o a_o pretend_a master_n of_o they_o all_o have_v i_o use_v he_o at_o this_o toyish_a gibe_v and_o illogical_a rate_n i_o have_v be_v a_o airy_a sophister_n of_o no_o more_o serious_a conscience_n or_o religion_n than_o punchenello_n but_o be_v his_o adversary_n i_o must_v be_v a_o dunce_n a_o ignoramus_n and_o something_o else_o he_o be_v so_o wise_a as_o to_o hide_v from_o we_o which_o be_v the_o epithet_n he_o be_v please_v out_o of_o his_o great_a store-house_n of_o ill_a language_n to_o bestow_v upon_o i_o at_o part_v but_o which_o be_v stranger_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v strange_a that_o he_o do_v after_o all_o the_o perversion_n addition_n diminution_n wrest_v misquotation_n evasion_n and_o schoolboy_n pun_n and_o gibe_n he_o have_v the_o confidence_n thus_o to_o end_v this_o chapter_n and_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o part_n of_o his_o first_o book_n thus_o i_o have_v honest_o &_o clear_o vindicate_v every_o charge_n in_o that_o part_n of_o my_o book_n which_o intend_v the_o proof_n of_o quakerism_n to_o be_v no_o christianity_n how_o honest_o and_o how_o clear_o he_o have_v vindicate_v his_o charge_n belong_v not_o to_o either_o of_o we_o to_o judge_v whatever_o we_o think_v but_o be_v le●●_n with_o every_o impartial_a reader_n to_o determine_v though_o if_o it_o be_v as_o he_o say_v i_o be_o yet_o to_o learn_v what_o a_o honest_a and_o clear_a vindication_n mean_v for_o according_a to_o that_o sense_n i_o have_v have_v of_o he_o through_o this_o whole_a controversy_n and_o the_o most_o upright_a observation_n i_o can_v make_v of_o his_o management_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o moral_a impossibility_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v conscious_a to_o himself_o of_o exhibit_v charge_v he_o have_v not_o prove_v of_o abuse_v our_o write_n to_o endeavour_v it_o of_o decline_v the_o strength_n of_o our_o answer_n and_o vilify_a of_o our_o person_n for_o write_v they_o to_o the_o righteous_a god_n i_o recommend_v the_o whole_a and_o according_a to_o our_o truth_n and_o honesty_n in_o this_o matter_n may_v we_o receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o well_o or_o ill_o do_v etc._n etc._n i_o hope_v my_o conscience_n will_v abide_v the_o search_n for_o god_n that_o know_v all_o heart_n be_v witness_n i_o have_v not_o the_o least_o gild_n upon_o i_o for_o my_o concern_v &_o carriage_n in_o this_o affair_n have_v do_v to_o he_o as_o i_o will_v all_o man_n shall_v do_v unto_o i_o and_o therein_o fulfil_v the_o royal_a law_n chap._n xiii_o my_o adversary_n decline_v meddle_v with_o my_o appendix_n his_o dise_v enuity_n great_a his_o perversion_n and_o wrest_n about_o his_o key_n pretend_v to_o open_v our_o word_n detect_v we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o his_o two_o and_o twenty_o and_o last_o chapter_n which_o for_o his_o truth_n reason_n language_n and_o carriage_n towards_o i_o be_v a_o exact_a representation_n of_o his_o entire_a reply_n which_o will_v not_o be_v hard_o for_o any_o serious_a reader_n to_o observe_v and_o make_v that_o use_n of_o it_o which_o may_v forever_o discard_v j._n faldo_n in_o his_o opinion_n from_o any_o future_a pretence_n to_o honesty_n in_o write_v till_o he_o have_v public_o recant_v this_o but_o because_o i_o always_o desire_v he_o shall_v speak_v for_o himself_o be_v please_v to_o hear_v he_o this_o reply_v p._n 91._o in_o w_n p_n answer_n to_o the_o three_o part_n of_o my_o book_n he_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o character_n of_o apostolical_a person_n and_o inspiration_n wherein_o it_o consist_v of_o twenty_o four_o page_n i_o agitate_a at_o large_a these_o point_n to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o their_o pretend_a apostolical_a ministry_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o they_o common_a to_o all_o believer_n on_o which_o quakerism_n be_v found_v rejoynder_n this_o complaint_n may_v have_v be_v very_o allowable_a in_o case_n i_o have_v not_o already_o sufficient_o consider_v and_o answer_v whatsoever_o be_v of_o moment_n in_o those_o twenty_o four_o page_n under_o the_o head_n of_o inspiration_n and_o that_o himself_o have_v not_o be_v so_o shameful_o injust_a as_o after_o have_v attack_v the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o book_n entitle_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n vindicated_n with_o thirty_o four_o page_n and_o i_o reply_v in_o a_o entire_a appendix_n of_o thirty_o page_n he_o have_v not_o wilful_o neglect_v to_o give_v ●s_n one_o word_n of_o rejoynder_n i_o beseech_v my_o reader_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o one_o great_a piece_n of_o disingenuity_n for_o if_o i_o must_v be_v chide_v because_o i_o do_v not_o unnecessary_o repeat_v controversy_n have_v already_o defend_v our_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n under_o the_o head_n of_o inspiration_n and_o gospel-ministry_n what_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o he_o that_o unprovoked_o fall_v foul_a of_o my_o fore_n name_v book_n and_o after_o i_o have_v reply_v in_o its_o defence_n take_v no_o more_o notice_n then_o if_o he_o be_v whole_o unconcern_v in_o any_o such_o attempt_n he_o must_v either_o think_v what_o he_o write_v irrefutable_a or_o indefensible_a if_o the_o first_o than_o he_o need_v not_o have_v reply_v at_o all_o since_o i_o be_o persuade_v he_o believe_v one_o part_n of_o what_o he_o write_v to_o be_v as_o irrefutable_a as_o the_o other_o if_o because_o indefensible_a he_o be_v to_o be_v excuse_v yet_o deserve_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o find_v that_o fault_n with_o other_o which_o he_o be_v much_o more_o guilty_a of_o himself_o to_o say_v nothing_o of_o his_o pretence_n of_o answer_v two_o hundred_o fifty_o four_o page_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o ninety_o six_o and_o that_o skip_v he_o make_v over_o my_o whole_a key_n consist_v of_o about_o half_a a_o score_n page_n add_v for_o the_o open_v our_o true_a mean_v from_o that_o pervert_v sense_n ignorant_a and_o malicious_a person_n have_v put_v upon_o our_o principle_n and_o last_o his_o vindication_n of_o his_o key_n in_o not_o a_o page_n and_o a_o half_a against_o six_o or_o seven_o page_n of_o my_o answer_n wherein_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v prove_v abundant_o defective_a but_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o say_v to_o remedy_v those_o defect_n i_o therein_o charge_v upon_o it_o reply_v p._n 92._o in_o my_o key_n of_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o particular_n he_o except_v against_o ten_o five_o of_o which_o he_o further_o explain_v the_o other_o five_o he_o oppose_v rejoynder_n this_o look_v unfair_a on_o my_o part_n till_o my_o reader_n be_v inform_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o particular_n have_v so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o man_n or_o book_n consequent_o no_o page_n how_o to_o find_v and_o read_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n he_o affirm_v to_o be_v our_o sense_n or_o mean_v which_o be_v enough_o to_o discredit_v a_o honest_a writer_n then_o j._n faldo_n so_o that_o what_o i_o do_v be_v more_o than_o can_v be_v just_o expect_v much_o less_o challenge_v from_o i_o however_o i_o take_v ten_o of_o the_o most_o suspicious_a if_o he_o be_v disprove_v in_o those_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n to_o suspect_v he_o about_o the_o rest_n till_o he_o have_v produce_v more_o unquestionable_a evidence_n of_o these_o he_o tell_v we_o i_o explain_v one_o five_o and_o oppose_v the_o other_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o give_v my_o opposition_n and_o what_o be_v his_o replication_n reply_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v in_o pag._n 247._o the_o will_z of_o the_o flesh_n i_o e._n all_o that_o be_v choose_v by_o man_n though_o he_o be_v thereto_o dispose_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n this_o w._n p._n call_v false_a and_o a_o abominable_a and_o notorious_a untruth_n i_o have_v prove_v at_o large_a their_o calling_n all_o thing_n of_o a_o religious_a nature_n by_o that_o name_n which_o be_v not_o by_o immediate_a inspiration_n although_o the_o scripture_n have_v precept_n and_o example_n command_v and_o prescribe_v they_o rejoynder_n if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n no_o man_n ever_o do_v since_o the_o world_n be_v he_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v it_o at_o large_a and_o i_o say_v i_o have_v refute_v it_o at_o large_a and_o what_o say_v he_o to_o that_o no_o more_o than_o this_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o at_o large_a etc._n etc._n do_v this_o man_n look_v like_o a_o able_a disputant_n that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o honest_a one_o take_v my_o answer_n by_o he_o omit_v with_o his_o own_o word_n faithful_o cite_v j._n f._n pag._n 69._o the_o will_z of_o the_o flesh_n i._n e._n all_o that_o be_v
substance_n or_o invention_n for_o text_n or_o wrest_n for_o meaning_n or_o gibe_n and_o taunt_n for_o pertinent_a reply_v i_o have_v hitherto_o abundant_o satisfy_v myself_o concern_v he_o and_o i_o hope_v all_o that_o read_v i_o both_o of_o he_o and_o his_o essay_n against_o the_o people_n call_v quaker_n if_o not_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v charge_v upon_o i_o as_o want_v good_a will_n to_o do_v it_o i_o be_v never_o more_o sedulous_a and_o i_o think_v never_o more_o faithful_a in_o any_o such_o affair_n and_o to_o the_o end_v my_o frequent_a complaint_n of_o his_o unfair_a deal_v may_v be_v further_o justify_v and_o confirm_v and_o his_o deportment_n in_o the_o whole_a of_o this_o controversy_n more_o exact_o relate_v i_o entreat_v my_o reader_n to_o consider_v what_o i_o have_v now_o to_o tell_v he_o chap._n fourteen_o of_o reflection_n on_o person_n and_o thing_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v john_n faldo_n in_o his_o own_o behalf_n he_o abhor_v that_o sordid_a way_n of_o write_v which_o some_o practice_n of_o reflect_v nick-naming_a give_v ill-language_n etc._n etc._n either_o to_o his_o adversary_n or_o his_o doctrine_n but_o as_o it_o fare_v with_o most_o man_n they_o condemn_v in_o other_o what_o they_o indulge_v in_o themselves_o so_o true_o no_o adversary_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o his_o severe_a censure_n of_o that_o unchristian_a way_n of_o proceed_v have_v make_v more_o bold_a with_o his_o reader_n nor_o fall_v more_o foul_o upon_o his_o adversary_n yea_o person_n unconcerned_a then_o j._n faldo_n have_v do_v we_o be_v as_o quiet_a as_o man_n that_o have_v scarce_o know_v there_o be_v such_o a_o person_n in_o the_o world_n when_o our_o peace_n be_v disturb_v by_o a_o great_a book_n entitle_v with_o no_o more_o modesty_n nor_o mercy_n then_o in_o plain_a term_n qvakerism_n no_o christianity_n in_o this_o he_o charge_v we_o at_o once_o with_o whatever_o all_o our_o adversary_n put_v together_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n insist_v upon_o to_o render_v we_o odious_a almost_o every_o charge_n as_o scandalous_a and_o impious_a as_o rank_a blasphemy_n and_o both_o render_v and_o call_v so_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v more_o than_o twenty_o time_n in_o that_o discourse_n this_o book_n i_o think_v i_o answer_v with_o more_o moderation_n then_o either_o it_o deserve_v or_o the_o law_n of_o retaliation_n will_v have_v grant_v at_o the_o latter-end_n of_o it_o i_o run_v up_o a_o few_o of_o his_o many_o unworthy_a reflection_n jeer_n and_o scoff_v together_o that_o i_o may_v the_o better_o help_v my_o reader_n to_o a_o true_a relish_n of_o our_o adversary_n spirit_n he_o say_v nothing_o to_o they_o which_o make_v i_o conclude_v i_o have_v not_o injure_v he_o nor_o in_o one_o word_n do_v he_o wrong_n for_o have_v i_o without_o doubt_n he_o have_v not_o pass_v over_o my_o collection_n with_o so_o deep_a silence_n i_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o transcribe_v they_o that_o my_o reader_n may_v see_v what_o provocation_n i_o meet_v with_o to_o draw_v rebuke_n from_o i_o horrid_a imposture_n ditch_n of_o gross_a delusion_n subvert_v christianity_n their_o feign_a christ_n folly_n madness_n it_o begin_v in_o blasphemy_n against_o christ_n gratify_v pride_n idleness_n giddiness_n in_o professor_n profane_a vanity_n folly_n nonsense_n error_n whether_o it_o smell_v more_o of_o the_o fox_n or_o the_o goose_n imposture_n babble_n blockish_a person_n quakerism_n enter_v the_o world_n as_o if_o satan_n break_v loose_a and_o possession_n by_o satan_n be_v to_o make_n way_n and_o fit_a soul_n for_o the_o quaker_n spirit_n o_o the_o hell_n dark_a expression_n of_o the_o quaker_n teacher_n what_o bitter_a curse_n and_o execration_n dismal_a howl_v horrible_a roar_v blasphemy_n wretch_n vain_a fiction_n quaker_n glow-worm_n deck_n their_o idol_n real_a nonsense_n but_o it_o be_v pity_n not_o to_o lash_v a_o little_a idiot_n stark_o blind_a steel_v hard_a your_o crooked_a unholy_a principle_n their_o light_n grow_v wise_a and_o wise_a opium_n of_o quakerism_n the_o quaker_n divine_a spirit_n dumb_a refreshment_n at_o quaker_n meeting_n so_o there_o be_v at_o puppet-plays_a impudent_a forehead_n non-such_a ignorance_n proud_a dream_v intolerable_a notion_n ignorance_n and_o delusion_n outstrip_v all_o in_o the_o crooked_a way_n blasphemer_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o glory_n sure_o god_n have_v give_v they_o up_o for_o their_o pride_n giddiness_n or_o idle_a ignorance_n and_o that_o in_o justice_n and_o the_o devil_n have_v blind_v their_o mind_n with_o a_o witness_n horrible_a abomination_n gross_a and_o dark_a conceit_n the_o rankness_n of_o quakerism_n and_o though_o i_o have_v careful_o avoid_v his_o ill_a example_n yet_o such_o be_v my_o unhappiness_n that_o my_o reproof_n be_v style_v rail_a and_o religious_a censure_n give_v forth_o from_o a_o grieve_a spirit_n count_v ill-language_n but_o what_o seem_v yet_o most_o insufferable_a this_o very_a man_n that_o call_v every_o sober_a reprehension_n by_o a_o hard_a name_n be_v most_o profuse_a in_o his_o black_a epithet_n upon_o we_o as_o if_o notwithstanding_o the_o circumstance_n he_o most_o confess_v he_o be_v under_o in_o the_o world_n as_o his_o complaint_n tell_v we_o which_o be_v no_o fault_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n he_o think_v it_o more_o intolerable_a that_o we_o shall_v censure_v his_o domineer_a scoff_v strain_n against_o a_o entire_a people_n be_v they_o what_o they_o will_v in_o reputation_n merit_n honesty_n or_o acceptance_n among_o man_n then_o that_o he_o shall_v use_v it_o what_o blindness_n have_v seize_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o see_v this_o a_o fault_n in_o himself_o be_v he_o fit_a to_o reprove_v who_o outdo_v the_o reprove_v in_o that_o for_o which_o the_o reproof_n be_v give_v but_o before_o i_o reflect_v his_o miscarriage_n of_o this_o nature_n upon_o he_o he_o have_v something_o to_o say_v to_o i_o it_o seem_v i_o have_v not_o behave_v myself_o towards_o he_o with_o that_o subjection_n to_o his_o unprovoke_v abuse_n which_o he_o think_v become_v i_o to_o a_o man_n of_o his_o quality_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o have_v stumble_v he_o and_o how_o patient_o this_o pretend_a enemy_n to_o personal_a reflection_n take_v it_o the_o first_o be_v this_o i_o happen_v to_o let_v fall_n in_o my_o answer_n not_o material_a to_o the_o point_n this_o but_o as_o a_o passant_a expression_n and_o so_o intend_v i_o find_v he_o more_o in_o word_n then_o matter_n and_o i_o suppose_v more_o be_v of_o that_o mind_n or_o else_o what_o mean_v his_o pain_n to_o be_v make_v waste_a paper_n of_o already_o quakerism_n no_o christianity_n have_v exchange_v the_o bookseller_n stall_v for_o the_o tobacco-shop_n this_o so_o harmless_a and_o true_a say_v have_v give_v he_o great_a offence_n at_o least_o he_o have_v take_v it_o what_o have_v become_v of_o i_o have_v i_o be_v either_o as_o petulant_a or_o vainglorious_a i_o will_v give_v his_o word_n that_o my_o reader_n may_v judge_v if_o the_o man_n have_v any_o vanity_n after_o his_o debate_n of_o serious_a matter_n now_o reader_n say_v he_o i_o be_o come_v to_o a_o passage_n which_o make_v i_o conclude_v its_o author_n desperate_a as_o if_o all_o the_o error_n and_o blasphemy_n he_o lay_v at_o my_o door_n in_o his_o fore_n go_v five_o chapter_n have_v be_v toy_n and_o trifle_n but_o dark_a conjecture_n and_o mere_a guess_n to_o this_o great_a discrimen_fw-la of_o my_o desperate_a condition_n oh_o monstrous_a vanity_n of_o vanity_n but_o he_o go_v on_o a_o passage_n say_v he_o that_o render_v w._n p._n careless_a how_o just_o odious_a he_o become_v with_o thousand_o so_o he_o may_v but_o lessen_v the_o reputation_n of_o my_o book_n better_o and_o better_o or_o worse_o and_o worse_o which_o my_o reader_n will_n do_v my_o reputation_n depend_v upon_o the_o goodliking_a of_o j._n faldo_n ungodly_a charge_n prop_v with_o fal●e_a citation_n perversion_n &_o c_o i_o be_o miserable_a then_o no_o head_n not_o empty_a will_v make_v so_o great_a a_o sound_n it_o seem_v his_o book_n have_v thousand_o of_o votary_n hundred_o be_v a_o number_n too_o diminutive_a to_o vow_v maintenance_n to_o his_o labour_n these_o word_n show_v the_o great_a vanity_n of_o the_o author_n or_o the_o debility_n of_o the_o cause_n that_o must_v have_v whole_a regiment_n of_o auxiliary_n to_o his_o protection_n choose_v he_o whether_o but_o that_o he_o may_v leave_v no_o part_n of_o his_o picture_n undraw_v by_o his_o own_o hand_n for_o who_o can_v or_o will_v do_v it_o so_o well_o hear_v he_o yet_o further_o the_o acceptation_n my_o book_n have_v have_v in_o the_o world_n become_v not_o i_o to_o express_v a_o cleaver_n way_n to_o tell_v we_o both_o his_o book_n be_v acceptance_n and_o his_o own_o modesty_n yet_o he_o so_o love_v the_o theme_n he_o can_v give_v over_o the_o second_o impression_n of_o above_o 1250._o may_v be_v abroad_o ere_o
god_n himself_o and_o so_o god_n save_v god_n and_o god_n worship_v god_n this_o my_o reader_n may_v find_v in_o his_o vind._n from_o p._n 75._o to_o 87._o particular_o this_o follow_v of_o e._n b._n about_o the_o soul_n 10._o from_o e._n burrough_n affirm_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o every_o man_n to_o be_v one_o with_o the_o spirit_n &_o as_o good_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o order_n to_o prove_v it_o the_o same_o j._n faldo_n infer_v he_o make_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n god_n because_o that_o which_o be_v as_o good_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v god_n book_n 1_o part_n 2._o p._n 122._o vind._n p._n 85_o 86._o as_o if_o e._n b._n have_v speak_v it_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o not_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n shine_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o his_o word_n express_v it_o 11._o last_o from_o our_o denial_n of_o his_o carnal_a resurrection_n as_o inconsistent_a with_o scripture_n and_o reason_n he_o take_v heart_n to_o tell_v all_o people_n that_o w._n p._n and_o all_o the_o through_o quaker_n deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v guilty_a of_o not_o believe_v a_o future_a reward_n in_o a_o other_o world_n with_o a_o train_n of_o ill_a language_n too_o long_o to_o bring_v in_o vind._n p._n 88_o 89_o 91._o this_o friendly_a reader_n have_v be_v the_o entertainment_n we_o have_v receive_v at_o j._n faldo_n hand_n but_o all_o thing_n shall_v work_v together_o for_o good_a iii_o of_o his_o evade_n my_o answer_n and_o argument_n it_o be_v very_o frequent_a with_o he_o next_o to_o leave_v out_o what_o i_o say_v or_o fasten_v false_a consequence_n upon_o what_o he_o transcribe_v to_o evade_v the_o strength_n of_o my_o answer_n either_o by_o pretend_v to_o have_v say_v enough_o in_o his_o first_o book_n as_o if_o that_o have_v foresee_v my_o answer_n and_o anticipate_v his_o reply_n with_o a_o refutation_n or_o by_o some_o one_o word_n which_o will_v serve_v he_o to_o play_v at_o or_o by_o be_v in_o haste_n or_o else_o my_o answer_n deserve_v no_o reply_n at_o all_o etc._n etc._n a_o evidence_n of_o this_o sort_n of_o carriage_n my_o reader_n may_v find_v in_o his_o reply_n p._n 5_o 17_o 18_o 38_o 51_o 57_o 58_o 59_o 69_o 71_o 76_o 91_o 93_o one_o at_o large_a for_o all_o to_o my_o several_a argument_n in_o defence_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n inspiration_n as_o he_o term_v it_o he_o return_v three_o or_o four_o line_n this_o w._n p._n be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v that_o he_o plead_v for_o it_o but_o after_o such_o a_o rude_a impertinent_a manner_n that_o i_o shall_v but_o injure_v you_o and_o show_v myself_o idle_a to_o animadvert_v upon_o it_o p._n 17._o the_o cheap_a way_n that_o ever_o man_n take_v to_o confute_v his_o adversary_n do_v this_o become_v any_o man_n of_o his_o pretence_n to_o either_o scholarship_n or_o christianity_n iv._o of_o his_o forgery_n or_o perversion_n i_o be_o sorry_a i_o have_v such_o reiterated_a occasion_n to_o charge_v he_o with_o forge_v that_o be_v foist_v in_o word_n into_o our_o write_n and_o say_n that_o be_v whole_o inconsistent_a with_o they_o or_o pervert_v those_o he_o deliver_v to_o the_o end_v he_o may_v make_v they_o ponounce_v his_o mind_n the_o more_o plain_o a_o few_o of_o many_o place_n i_o have_v observe_v as_o in_o page_n 22_o 25_o 41_o 42_o 50_o 51_o 92_o 93._o of_o which_o i_o shall_v give_v four_o instance_n more_o particular_o 1._o ●_o pennington_n speak_v of_o knowledge_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n by_o flesh_n say_v he_o the_o quaker_n understand_v the_o use_n of_o our_o understand_n though_o sanctify_v first_o book_n p._n 41._o vind._n p_o 24_o 25._o 2._o his_o second_o be_v make_v w._n smith_n to_o call_v the_o scripture_n tradition_n of_o man_n earthly_a root_n darkness_n confusion_n corruption_n rot_a deceitful_a the_o whore_n cup_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n all_o out_o of_o the_o life_n and_o power_n of_o god_n and_o not_o that_o the_o mean_v they_o of_o those_o who_o have_v degenerate_v from_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n and_o have_v set_v up_o their_o own_o imagination_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o god_n institution_n teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o tradition_n of_o man_n first_o book_n p._n 117._o 119._o vind._n 41_o 45._o 3._o the_o three_o be_v his_o making_z i._n pennington_n to_o call_v visible_a worship_n the_o city_n of_o abomination_n vind._n p._n 50._o 4._o last_o that_o he_o give_v in_o our_o name_n this_o interpretation_n of_o the_o veil_n be_v over_o they_o i._n e._n the_o belief_n of_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n which_o be_v of_o our_o nature_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n etc._n etc._n vind._n p._n 93._o v._o of_o his_o grand_a improbability_n and_o downright_a untruth_n this_o charge_n i_o know_v must_v needs_o be_v very_o unpleasant_a to_o a_o man_n as_o vain_a glorious_a as_o many_o place_n of_o his_o book_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v but_o i_o can_v help_v it_o it_o be_v truth_n if_o there_o be_v an●_n truth_n in_o the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v write_v a_o great_a many_o unlikely_a and_o absolute_a untrue_a thing_n let_v my_o reader_n take_v the_o pain_n to_o look_v over_o these_o follow_a page_n of_o his_o reply_n and_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v if_o impartial_a he_o will_v not_o think_v that_o i_o have_v in_o a_o tittle_n wrong_v he_o p._n 6_o 7_o 19_o 21_o 33_o 35_o 38_o 39_o 42_o 46_o 47_o 48_o 49_o 55_o 56_o 65_o 70_o 72_o 73_o 89_o 93._o of_o which_o i_o will_v only_o instance_n four_o 1._o first_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o quote_v forty_o place_n out_o of_o our_o friend_n book_n that_o will_v prove_v the_o light_n within_o as_o within_o we_o to_o be_v the_o only_a lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o very_a god_n p._n 6._o whereas_o he_o bring_v not_o any_o one_o that_o either_o prove_v the_o term_n or_o the_o matter_n 2._o second_o he_o confident_o accuse_v we_o of_o charge_v the_o miscarriage_n of_o man_n soul_n on_o the_o knowledge_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o god_n blessing_n do_v convey_v p._n 21._o 3._o three_o whereas_o i_o say_v that_o w._n smith_n word_n reflect_v not_o in_o the_o least_o upon_o the_o scripture_n nor_o those_o doctrine_n true_o receive_v thence_o neither_o that_o any_o such_o word_n can_v be_v produce_v by_o our_o adversary_n he_o bold_o tell_v his_o reader_n i_o intend_v no_o other_o but_o that_o smith_n do_v not_o accuse_v himself_o in_o so_o many_o word_n of_o blaspheme_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n from_o thence_o receive_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v we_o both_o know_v it_o to_o be_v blasphemy_n but_o w._n smith_n do_v not_o call_v it_o so_o p._n 41._o there_o be_v no_o ingenuous_a man_n that_o will_v not_o abhor_v the_o falseness_n of_o this_o passage_n 4._o last_o i_o oppose_v his_o affirmation_n that_o we_o do_v not_o profess_v or_o believe_v eternal_a reward_n thus_o pretend_v to_o confute_v i_o w._n p._n oppose_v i_o rather_o because_o he_o will_v not_o be_v think_v to_o subscribe_v to_o i_o then_o that_o he_o believe_v not_o what_o i_o say_v to_o be_v true_a p_o 69._o but_o if_o this_o be_v true_a sure_a i_o be_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o the_o world_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o give_v this_o sort_n of_o carriage_n at_o large_a but_o by_o transcribe_v far_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n vi_o of_o his_o idle_a jeer_n and_o frothy_a expression_n i_o have_v not_o meet_v with_o any_o man_n write_v upon_o so_o serious_a a_o subject_a as_o religion_n be_v that_o give_v himself_o the_o liberty_n of_o so_o many_o vain_a expression_n as_o if_o he_o have_v intend_v his_o discourse_n for_o vulgar_a merriment_n &_o not_o to_o christian_a information_n if_o my_o reader_n please_v to_o trouble_v himself_o with_o the_o perusal_n of_o these_o follow_a page_n he_o shall_v find_v enough_o to_o nauseate_a p._n 6_o 22_o 23_o 26_o 27_o 29_o 30_o 34_o 37_o 40_o 47_o 50_o 51_o 53_o 58_o 60_o 69_o 71_o 72_o 95._o take_v two_o instance_n he_o cackle_v like_o a_o hen_n when_o he_o have_v lay_v a_o worse_a thing_n than_o a_o egg_n p._n 47._o again_o because_o we_o say_v god_n speak_v once_o by_o balaam_n ass_n thereby_o prove_v that_o he_o do_v not_o always_o speak_v by_o the_o scripture_n he_o thus_o reflect_v i_o wonder_v not_o that_o they_o leave_v the_o teach_n of_o god_n by_o the_o scripture_n f._n to_o attend_v on_o the_o ministry_n of_o ass_n thereby_o call_v we_o ass_n p._n 27._o which_o how_o witty_a soever_o he_o think_v such_o sort_n of_o say_n to_o be_v sure_a they_o be_v more_o frothy_a and_o irreligious_a then_o become_v a_o man_n profess_v religion_n much_o less_o write_v of_o the_o weighty_a point_n of_o it_o
47._o pag._n 101._o t._n jenner_n a_o presbyter-independent_a priest_n of_o ireland_n write_v a_o book_n against_o we_o for_o gain_n for_o he_o go_v from_o house_n to_o house_n of_o many_o sufficient_a and_o some_o great_a man_n to_o present_v they_o some_o give_v he_o a_o crown_n some_o two_o crown_n some_o a_o piece_n among_o other_o he_o have_v the_o confidence_n and_o avarice_n to_o give_v one_o to_o the_o lord_n lt._n of_o that_o kingdom_n his_o secretary_n carry_v it_o to_o he_o he_o turn_v it_o over_o observe_v many_o black_a charge_n of_o foul_a and_o most_o pernicious_a error_n to_o religion_n and_o civil_a government_n the_o parson_n still_o stay_v the_o secr._n think_v he_o have_v favour_v he_o sufficient_o but_o not_o understand_v the_o priest_n aim_v that_o be_v lucre_n the_o old_a priest_n sin_n be_v press_v to_o tell_v his_o lord_n that_o he_o wait_v for_o his_o excellency_n answer_v the_o secretary_n be_v so_o civil_a as_o to_o answer_v his_o desire_n but_o when_o the_o lord_n lt._n understand_v his_o drift_n he_o return_v the_o book_n to_o the_o parson_n with_o this_o account_n that_o be_v be_v sorry_a to_o bear_v that_o the_o quaker_n hold_v such_o ill_a principle_n but_o the_o tare_n and_o the_o wheat_n must_v grow_v together_o till_o the_o day_n of_o ludgment_n so_o the_o parson_n be_v correct_v for_o his_o baseness_n and_o disappoint_v of_o the_o great_a bone_n he_o creep_v thither_o for_o leg._n allege_v l._n 1._o admon●_n ad_fw-la gent._n strom._n l._n 5._o pag._n 48._o see_v dr._n bilson_n and_o the_o head_n and_o doctor_n of_o oxford_n against_o the_o brownist_n gifford_n against_o h._n barrow_n r._n bernard_n against_o brownism_n answer_v by_o i._o robinson_n and_o ball_n against_o i._n cann_n etc._n etc._n rob._n nor._n his_o ans_fw-fr to_o syd_n sym._n excomm_n pag._n 8._o 8._o a_o odd_a &_o unsound_a phrase_n act_n 1._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o job_n 23._o 8_o 1._o cor._n 2._o ephes_n 1_o t._n c_o work_v page_n 249._o i._o john_n 1_n to_o call_v any_o day_n of_o the_o week_n a_o christian-sabbath_n be_v not_o christian_n but_o jewish_a give_v we_o one_o scripture_n for_o it_o i_o will_v give_v two_o against_o it_o gal._n 4._o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o where_o the_o apostle_n make_v their_o observation_n or_o preference_n of_o day_n to_o be_v no_o less_o than_o a_o token_n of_o their_o turn_v from_o the_o gospel_n also_o col._n 2._o 16._o a_o outward_a sabbath_n or_o keep_n of_o a_o day_n to_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n and_o that_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v for_o reject_v such_o custom_n for_o this_o very_a reason_n the_o protestant-churche_n beyond_o the_o sea_n general_o deny_v the_o morality_n of_o the_o first_o day_n count_v all_o day_n alike_o in_o themselves_o only_o they_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o first_o day_n as_o a_o apostolical_a custom_n and_o think_v it_o convenient_a to_o give_v one_o day_n of_o rest_n from_o labour_n to_o man_n and_o beast_n each_o week_n of_o this_o mind_n several_a learned_a protestant_n of_o our_o own_o country_n have_v declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o that_o neither_o our_o english_a episcopalian_n nor_o french_a presbyterian_o can_v escape_v john_n faldo_n consequence_n any_o more_o than_o the_o quaker_n for_o if_o those_o that_o deny_v the_o supper_n baptism_n and_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n to_o be_v the_o christian_a sabbath_n deny_v gospel-ordinance_n than_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n j._n f_n christian-sabbath_n to_o be_v the_o christian-sabbath_n must_v needs_o deny_v a_o gospel-ordinance_n but_o that_o do_v many_o english_a episcopalian_o and_o most_o french_a presbyterian_o therefore_o both_o several_a english_a episcopalian_o and_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o french_a presbyter_n and_o be_v denyer_n of_o a_o gospel-ordinance_n consequently_n j._n f._n tell_v a_o untruth_n in_o his_o preface_n when_o he_o assure_v both_o episcopalian_a and_o presbyterian_a that_o they_o be_v no_o further_o concern_v in_o his_o discourse_n then_o vindicate_v in_o short_a though_o we_o assert_v but_o one_o christian-sabbath_n and_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v the_o everlasting_a day_n of_o rest_n from_o all_o our_o own_o work_n to_o worship_n and_o enjoy_v god_n in_o the_o newness_n of_o the_o spirit_n yet_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o we_o both_o meet_v upon_o the_o first_o day_n in_o the_o week_n and_o behave_v ourselves_o with_o as_o in-offensive_a a_o conversation_n as_o any_o of_o our_o sabbatherian_a adversary_n the_o honour_n be_v god_n by_o who_o we_o be_v what_o we_o be_v but_o this_o testimony_n i_o record_v for_o god_n his_o gopel_n and_o right-begotten_a child_n that_o the_o meat_n drink_n wash_n and_o day_n observe_v christian_n be_v not_o come_v so_o far_o as_o those_o foolish_a galatian_n for_o ●hom_n the_o apostle_n travel_v again_o until_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o they_o gal._n 4._o 19_o be_v yet_o stranger_n to_o the_o life_n power_n spirit_n and_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o gospel_n gospel_n see_v judas_n and_o the_o jew_n comb_n again_o chri._n chri._n see_v judas_n and_o the_o jew_n comb_n against_o christ_n etc._n etc._n john_n 14._o 10._o mat._n 10._o 20._o see_v my_o answ_n pag._n 133._o rom._n 8._o 13._o 14._o math._n 7._o 27._o 23._o heb._n 12._o 14._o john_n 3._o 3._o 5._o gal._n 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o dan._n 9_o 24._o a._n sadeel_v oper._n pag._n 37._o rom._n 3._o 25._o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o 20._o psal_n 16._o 11._o 11._o what_o say_v j._n f._n to_o this_o be_v it_o not_o beyond_o what_o e._n b._n say_v of_o a_o report_n of_o christ_n h._n grot._n in_o epist_n 1_o cor._n phil._n 2._o 8._o christ_n be_v the_o eternal_a light_n before_o john_n testify_v of_o he_o see_v book_n call_v annotation_n of_o certain_a learned_a divine_n in_o the_o year_n 1645_o on_o joh._n 1._o verse_n 9_o gen._n 45._o 8._o plat._n pol._n 1._o isa_n 2._o 3._o clem._n al._n admo_n ad_fw-la gent._n p._n 2._o strom._n l._n 2._o see_v rom._n 8._o 9_o 10_o 11._o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o christ_n be_v equiu●●ently_o take_v e._n b.'s_n work_v p._n 144._o homo_fw-la rationabilis_fw-la factus_fw-la irrationabiliter_fw-la vivens_fw-la amisit_fw-la rationem_fw-la tradidit_fw-la se_fw-la terra●o_fw-la spiritui_fw-la psalm_n 48._o 21._o vide_fw-la irraeneus_n p._n 336._o i._n e._n a_o man_n who_o be_v make_v reasonable_a live_v unreasonable_o have_v lose_v his_o reason_n have_v give_v himself_o up_o to_o a_o earthly_a spirit_n spirit_n if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o adam_n be_v not_o mention_v as_o degenerate_v but_o as_o create_v and_o therefore_o this_o interpretation_n will_v not_o do_v i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n but_o first_o this_o make_v not_o for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o dead_a body_n and_o so_o far_o our_o adversary_n get_v no_o strength_n 2_o though_o the_o apostle_n being_n with_o the_o first_o adam_n creation_n yet_o he_o orderly_o come_v to_o the_o earthly_a image_n that_o the_o live_a soul_n put_v on_o by_o disobedience_n which_o introduce_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n and_o his_o quicken_a spirit_n to_o create_v a_o new_a bring_v into_o the_o image_n of_o god_n so_o there_o be_v adam_n as_o sow_v and_o his_o posterity_n representative_o in_o he_o and_o his_o and_o their_o lap_n and_o then_o the_o restoration_n by_o he_o that_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n the_o second_o adam_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n however_o annot._n cert_n divin_n anno_o 1645._o 1645._o note_v reader_n that_o our_o translation_n be_v erroneous_a job_n 19_o 32._o who_o my_o eye_n shall_v behold_v in_o the_o hebrew_n thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n my_o eye_n have_v see_v the_o septuagint_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vidit_fw-la do_v see_v as_o drusius_n and_o cadurcus_n observe_v observe_v oh_o the_o angry_a countenance_n the_o wicked_a will_v have_v on_o that_o day_n oh_o the_o angry_a speech_n it_o may_v be_v from_o word_n they_o fall_v to_o blow_n and_o tear_v one_o another_o hair_n and_o spurn_v at_o one_o another_o belly_n bite_v one_o another_o flesh_n and_o even_o claw_v out_o one_o another_o eye_n dr._n barnea_n i._n brad._n i._o calv._n b._n jew._n vv._n perk._n vv._n green_n i._o car_n d._n owen_n with_o a_o hundred_o more_o of_o this_o mind_n admire_v by_o such_o as_o i._o f._n yet_o that_o doctrine_n deride_v by_o he_o in_o we_o particular_o i_o the_o wessalia_n no_o man_n can_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o hold_v forth_o in_o his_o word_n but_o he_o alone_o paradox_n in_o fasc_fw-la rer._n p._n 163._o book_n 1._o part_n 3._o pag._n 50._o balaam_n ass_n shall_v rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n against_o j._n f._n b._n 1._o p._n 1._o p._n 107._o p._n 39_o 80_o 107._o p._n 109._o p._n 2._o p._n 20._o b._n 1._o p._n 1._o p._n 8._o p._n 2._o p._n 21._o p._n 22._o p._n 126._o p._n 3._o p._n 37._o book_n 1._o part_n 1._o pag._n 31_o 32_o 33_o 34_o 35_o 36._o part_n 3._o from_o p._n 62._o to_o 90._o psalm_n 85_o 9_o 10._o